Selected quad for the lemma: book_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
book_n good_a read_v word_n 3,211 5 4.1636 3 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A14461 The Christian disputations, by Master Peter Viret. Deuided into three partes, dialogue wise: set out with such grace, that it cannot be, but that a man shall take greate pleasure in the reading thereoff. Translated out of French into English, by Iohn Brooke of Ashe; Disputations chrestiennes. English Viret, Pierre, 1511-1571.; Calvin, Jean, 1509-1564.; Brooke, John, d. 1582. 1579 (1579) STC 24776; ESTC S119193 490,810 627

There are 32 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

follow_v the_o example_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n who_o have_v 23._o always_o teach_v those_o with_o who_o they_o have_v to_o do_v in_o a_o language_n that_o they_o can_v beast_n understand_v for_o that_o cause_n be_v give_v unto_o the_o apostle_n the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n for_o to_o preach_v unto_o all_o people_n and_o nation_n know_v 1._o that_o the_o language_n ought_v to_o serve_v to_o the_o matter_n and_o not_o the_o matter_n to_o the_o language_n wherefore_o consider_v that_o some_o man_n do_v write_v in_o hebrew_n some_o in_o greek_a some_o in_o latin_a other_o in_o almaigne_n and_o in_o flemish_a other_o in_o italian_a and_o spanish_a i_o have_v also_o write_v in_o a_o language_n with_o which_o i_o be_o best_a acquaint_v and_o have_v most_o familiarity_n book_n according_a to_o my_o birth_n and_o nativity_n although_o that_o the_o matter_n that_o i_o entreat_v off_o shall_v have_v a_o great_a grace_n in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n then_o in_o the_o french_a tongue_n and_o shall_v be_v unto_o i_o more_o advantage_n for_o oftentimes_o i_o have_v the_o matter_n ready_a that_o i_o need_v not_o but_o to_o write_v they_o out_o of_o good_a author_n where_o i_o need_v not_o to_o travail_v to_o translate_v the_o thing_n in_o french_a the_o which_o be_v very_o hard_a and_o impossible_a especial_o unto_o i_o to_o set_v they_o out_o with_o such_o grace_n and_o to_o interpret_v they_o so_o native_o as_o they_o sound_v in_o their_o natural_a language_n hebrew_n greek_n or_o latin._n for_o although_o i_o be_v a_o poor_a orator_n in_o latin_a i_o be_o not_o much_o better_a in_o french_a wherefore_o although_o i_o do_v not_o speak_v the_o language_n of_o attica_n nor_o well_o beautify_v &_o like_o a_o retrition_n but_o that_o it_o happen_v oftentimes_o that_o i_o do_v fall_n into_o my_o rude_a speech_n or_o if_o i_o wander_v astray_o in_o france_n and_o that_o i_o come_v again_o into_o the_o country_n i_o do_v think_v that_o the_o favourable_a reader_n will_v well_o bear_v with_o such_o fault_n and_o especial_o in_o the_o rhyme_n and_o french_a verse_n which_o sometime_o i_o mingle_v in_o these_o dialogue_n follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o good_a author_n which_o have_v willing_o keep_v this_o custom_n to_o translate_v into_o verse_n after_o their_o own_o language_n that_o which_o they_o allege_v of_o the_o poet_n which_o have_v write_v it_o in_o a_o other_o language_n the_o which_o i_o have_v do_v sometime_o because_o that_o i_o put_v in_o the_o margentes_fw-la those_o author_n by_o the_o which_o i_o help_v myself_o for_o to_o discover_v and_o unhide_v better_o the_o abuse_n and_o superstition_n to_o the_o end_n that_o some_o man_n shall_v not_o think_v that_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o speaker_n of_o the_o dialogue_n for_o the_o nonce_n and_o without_o just_a occasion_n if_o there_o be_v in_o my_o verse_n but_o little_a rhyme_n it_o suffice_v i_o so_o that_o it_o have_v some_o reason_n for_o i_o do_v not_o make_v profession_n of_o poetry_n &_o it_o suffice_v i_o to_o turn_v they_o gross_o or_o plain_o beside_o that_o that_o i_o be_o a_o evil_a orator_n yet_o i_o be_o a_o worse_a poet._n yet_o nevertheless_o i_o be_o full_o certify_v that_o so_o many_o good_a mind_n and_o wit_n as_o france_n bring_v up_o very_o able_a and_o expert_a both_o in_o poetry_n and_o french_a prose_n shall_v have_v none_o occasion_n to_o envy_v i_o nor_o to_o rebuke_v or_o find_v fault_n with_o my_o poetry_n for_o they_o may_v very_o well_o judge_v that_o i_o pretend_v not_o by_o my_o verse_n to_o have_v the_o crown_n of_o bay_n and_o that_o i_o will_v not_o take_v from_o they_o their_o science_n and_o name_n also_o i_o hope_v that_o those_o unto_o who_o god_o have_v give_v more_o gift_n and_o grace_n to_o speak_v will_v consider_v to_o bear_v with_o my_o rude_a style_n as_o the_o athenian_n who_o be_v the_o cumming_a in_o all_o greece_n both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o in_o language_n have_v not_o despise_v the_o doctrine_n and_o language_n of_o the_o philosopher_n anacharsis_n anacharsis_n notwithstanding_o that_o he_o be_v a_o sythian_a and_o of_o a_o barbarous_a nation_n they_o must_v also_o consider_v which_o know_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o country_n wherein_o i_o be_o i_o have_v sometime_o use_v express_o some_o word_n which_o shall_v not_o be_v receive_v of_o those_o which_o sludye_n in_o the_o fineness_n of_o the_o french_a tongue_n but_o i_o do_v the_o same_o for_o to_o condescend_v to_o the_o rudeness_n and_o capacity_n of_o the_o most_o ignorant_a which_o better_a understand_v those_o word_n take_v from_o their_o language_n than_o other_o that_o be_v more_o fine_a and_o eloquent_a furthermore_o although_o that_o there_o be_v many_o good_a man_n which_o have_v already_o write_v of_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o french_a tongue_n with_o more_o haughty_a style_n and_o more_o eloquent_a than_o i_o can_v and_o of_o a_o more_o deep_a and_o profound_a knowledge_n yet_o nevertheless_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o those_o which_o know_v that_o christian_a simplicity_n and_o modesty_n be_v will_v neither_o despise_v my_o language_n nor_o my_o doctrine_n but_o that_o they_o will_v take_v it_o all_o 13._o in_o good_a part_n consider_v that_o if_o amos_n which_o be_v a_o shepherd_n and_o many_o other_o prophet_n of_o base_a condition_n have_v not_o use_v so_o high_a a_o style_n nor_o have_v speak_v so_o profound_o and_o learned_o as_o that_o kingly_a prophet_n david_n or_o isaiah_n that_o great_a orator_n isaiah_n of_o the_o royal_a lineage_n and_o bring_v up_o in_o the_o court_n they_o have_v not_o therefore_o leave_v off_o to_o be_v prophet_n and_o to_o speak_v through_o god_n spirit_n and_o to_o profit_v very_o much_o in_o his_o church_n who_o style_n they_o have_v use_v and_o although_o that_o the_o euangelisle_n and_o ●loqunence_n apostle_n have_v not_o write_v in_o such_o pomp_n of_o word_n nor_o have_v not_o so_o much_o travail_v after_o the_o language_n of_o demosthenes_n and_o cicero_n yet_o we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o they_o have_v more_o profit_v to_o all_o mankind_n by_o their_o ●ude_a stile_n than_o the_o other_o by_o all_o their_o pomp_n of_o human_a eloquence_n without_o any_o comparison_n but_o if_o we_o consider_v god_n work_v we_o shall_v know_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n although_o that_o he_o do_v not_o reject_v the_o eloquence_n which_o be_v one_o of_o his_o gift_n yet_o nevertheless_o he_o delight_v himself_o more_o in_o the_o simplicity_n of_o language_n for_o to_o declare_v better_o his_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o do_v not_o attribute_v unto_o human_a eloquence_n that_o which_o appertain_v unto_o he_o i_o speak_v this_o because_o of_o some_o delicate_a mo●thes_n and_o curious_a of_o language_n which_o regard_v not_o but_o the_o stile_n and_o speech_n the_o manner_n &_o phrase_n of_o speak_v without_o consider_v the_o sentence_n and_o that_o that_o one_o speak_v as_o though_o man_n do_v write_v for_o the_o tongue_n and_o for_o to_o learn_v only_o for_o to_o jangle_n and_o prattle_n as_o the_o pie_n and_o jay_n not_o rather_o for_o to_o instruct_v the_o spirit_n soul_n and_o the_o conscience_n they_o regard_v but_o the_o flower_n and_o care_v not_o for_o the_o fruit_n and_o which_o be_v worse_o one_o shall_v find_v they_o of_o such_o corrupt_a judgement_n that_o they_o prefer_v the_o paint_a flower_n before_o those_o that_o grow_v natural_o thincke_v to_o beautify_v their_o language_n and_o to_o enrich_v the_o french_a tongue_n god_o know_v what_o a_o cut_n and_o mangle_v they_o make_v and_o how_o they_o mangle_v the_o latin_a so_o that_o they_o do_v latin_a speak_v neither_o latin_a nor_o french_a but_o desire_v to_o avoid_v and_o not_o to_o use_v all_o that_o which_o they_o think_v to_o be_v common_a to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v esteem_v the_o great_a orator_n do_v forge_n and_o invent_v a_o new_a language_n and_o do_v despise_v the_o good_a french_a word_n for_o to_o steal_v away_o those_o from_o strange_a tongue_n that_o curiosity_n and_o affection_n of_o language_n be_v the_o cause_n that_o many_o delight_n rather_o to_o read_v book_n full_a of_o scoff_n fable_n lie_n and_o of_o blasphemy_n than_o those_o of_o divinity_n or_o of_o some_o good_a divine_n and_o holy_a man_n and_o this_o vice_n be_v not_o only_o in_o the_o french_a tongue_n but_o also_o in_o that_o latin_a for_o there_o be_v some_o which_o have_v so_o great_a fear_n to_o defile_v their_o golden_a tongue_n and_o to_o imbrue_v book_n their_o goodly_a stile_n with_o the_o simplicity_n &_o baseness_n of_o the_o prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a language_n that_o they_o have_v rather_o to_o defile_v their_o soul_n understand_n and_o spirit_n in_o foolish_a curious_a book_n or_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o paynim_n and_o idolater_n
then_o to_o read_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o which_o they_o dare_v not_o touch_v or_o if_o they_o desire_v some_o nilo_fw-la time_n to_o drink_v of_o it_o that_o be_v as_o the_o dog_n do_v at_o the_o flood_n nilus_n they_o do_v but_o suck_v in_o the_o water_n hasty_o as_o though_o they_o be_v afraid_a to_o touch_v it_o and_o that_o there_o be_v in_o it_o crocodile_n they_o will_v touch_v it_o as_o a_o cat_n do_v hot_a coal_n i_o do_v not_o condemn_v the_o read_n of_o good_a author_n and_o of_o poet_n orator_n and_o philosopher_n the_o which_o may_v serve_v we_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n if_o first_o of_o all_o we_o be_v well_o instruct_v in_o the_o christian_a religion_n but_o i_o can_v not_o allow_v but_o great_o condemn_v those_o which_o altogether_o give_v themselves_o unto_o such_o author_n or_o to_o other_o a_o great_a deal_n worse_o and_o make_v none_o account_v of_o the_o holy_a bible_n and_o divine_a book_n to_o which_o all_o other_o science_n and_o discipline_n ought_v to_o serve_v and_o to_o which_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v prefer_v shall_v we_o not_o judge_v he_o a_o fool_n &_o book_n out_o of_o his_o wit_n which_o will_v always_o stay_v in_o his_o grammar_n and_o in_o the_o principle_n and_o rule_n of_o the_o same_o and_o despise_v the_o study_n of_o other_o liberal_a art_n and_o of_o philosophy_n and_o will_v in_o no_o wise_n meddle_v with_o they_o nor_o exercise_v himself_o in_o speak_v nor_o yet_o in_o write_n fear_v to_o forget_v and_o lose_v those_o rule_n and_o ground_n of_o grammar_n who_o will_v not_o judge_v such_o a_o man_n to_o be_v mad_a sith_o that_o the_o grammar_n yea_o the_o rhetoric_n whatsoever_o praise_n that_o cicero_n give_v unto_o it_o and_o the_o logic_n also_o be_v not_o but_o as_o handmaiden_n and_o servant_n unto_o other_o discipline_n the_o which_o man_n do_v learn_v for_o to_o serve_v unto_o they_o we_o do_v now_o mock_v the_o barbarous_a school_n master_n which_o we_o have_v have_v which_o can_v read_v unto_o we_o alexander_n but_o doctrinal_a of_o alexander_n and_o do_v hold_v we_o therein_o all_o our_o life_n time_n without_o let_v we_o at_o any_o time_n taste_v any_o good_a author_n insomuch_o that_o one_o shall_v never_o have_v do_v but_o the_o thing_n be_v always_o to_o begin_v again_o those_o some_o unto_o i_o not_o to_o differ_v much_o from_o they_o for_o notwithstanding_o that_o they_o do_v read_v better_a author_n and_o that_o they_o do_v exercise_v themselves_o to_o speak_v and_o write_v better_o yet_o nevertheless_o i_o esteem_v not_o all_o that_o which_o they_o do_v no_o more_o than_o the_o grammar_n of_o alexander_n or_o as_o grecismus_fw-la and_o roiolis_fw-la and_o the_o logic_n of_o tartaret_n and_o of_o other_o sophister_n except_o they_o make_v all_o their_o skill_n and_o knowledge_n to_o the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o god_o and_o if_o they_o mind_n it_o unto_o any_o other_o mark_n or_o end_n for_o otherwise_o whereto_o shall_v all_o their_o god._n science_n and_o eloquence_n serve_v but_o to_o the_o paynim_n and_o people_n without_o god_n the_o which_o be_v more_o hurtful_a and_o dangerous_a then_o profitable_a to_o the_o common_a wealth_n in_o he_o which_o have_v not_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o which_o be_v not_o well_o instruct_v in_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o when_o they_o have_v study_v all_o their_o life_n time_n to_o beautify_v and_o 〈◊〉_d forth_o their_o language_n i_o think_v yet_o nevertheless_o that_o a_o man_n shall_v not_o find_v many_o among_o they_o which_o can_v come_v unto_o such_o perfection_n by_o the_o which_o they_o may_v approach_v so_o near_o unto_o gicero_n as_o that_o seditious_a catiline_n who_o be_v very_o eloquent_a gariline_n but_o when_o they_o do_v surmount_v demosthenes_n may_v not_o we_o right_o ●ay_v that_o of_o they_o which_o eschines_n have_v say_v of_o he_o compare_v he_o unto_o a_o flute_n which_o have_v but_o the_o beak_n of_o bill_n demostlienes_n the_o which_o be_v unprofitable_a after_o that_o the_o neck_n be_v cut_v off_o what_o be_v there_o also_o in_o these_o here_o but_o the_o tongue_n the_o which_o oftentimes_o hurt_v many_o and_o profit_v few_o be_v not_o a_o poor_a labourer_n which_o know_v his_o god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n his_o saviour_n and_o which_o confess_v he_o in_o his_o rude_a eloquence_n language_n and_o which_o honour_v he_o through_o his_o good_a life_n and_o conversation_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o these_o great_a poet_n orator_n and_o philosopher_n who_o be_v altogether_o ignorant_a and_o which_o do_v serve_v but_o the_o flesh_n the_o world_n and_o satan_n prince_n of_o the_o same_o be_v not_o they_o great_a ass_n and_o beast_n in_o comparison_n of_o he_o and_o yet_o worse_o for_o the_o ox_n know_v his_o lord_n and_o a_o ass_n his_o master_n stall_n as_o say_v the_o prophet_n the_o which_o those_o here_o which_o will_v be_v 3._o count_v for_o true_a israelite_n god_n people_n and_o christian_n will_v not_o acknowledge_v nor_o serve_v he_o do_v unto_o he_o so_o much_o honour_n as_o the_o ox_n &_o the_o ass_n do_v unto_o their_o master_n how_o dare_v they_o esteem_v themselves_o wise_a be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n the_o which_o only_o be_v the_o true_a knowledge_n for_o to_o bring_v we_o unto_o everlasting_a blessedness_n in_o comparison_n of_o which_o all_o other_o which_o be_v call_v science_n be_v but_o man_n opinion_n error_n and_o lie_n except_o they_o 23_o have_v this_o for_o a_o guide_n it_o be_v very_o hard_a to_o find_v for_o such_o man_n medicive_v proper_a to_o heal_v they_o and_o meat_n for_o to_o make_v they_o have_v a_o appetite_n sith_o that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o out_o of_o taste_n with_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n and_o the_o heavenly_a manna_n life_n to_o the_o which_o they_o prefer_v the_o garlic_n onion_n the_o flesh_n and_o fish_n of_o egypt_n for_o he_o that_o shall_v give_v they_o such_o meat_n as_o they_o desire_v shall_v but_o increase_v their_o grief_n the_o great_a and_o if_o the_o meat_n be_v not_o as_o they_o will_v have_v it_o they_o will_v not_o taste_v of_o it_o wherefore_o i_o leave_v such_o to_o be_v handle_v of_o those_o which_o have_v more_o cunning_a than_o i_o and_o which_o can_v better_a help_v their_o disease_n there_o be_v other_o which_o differ_v but_o a_o little_a from_o these_o here_o and_o which_o care_v not_o so_o much_o of_o the_o language_n but_o they_o have_v yet_o a_o great_a vice_n common_a with_o the_o first_o that_o be_v that_o they_o delight_v not_o in_o read_v any_o good_a matter_n grave_n and_o which_o touch_v god_n word_n and_o the_o health_n of_o their_o soul_n but_o book_n unto_o worldly_a thing_n delectable_a to_o the_o flesh_n pernicious_a and_o hurtful_a to_o the_o spirit_n and_o conscience_n and_o therefore_o although_o that_o many_o good_a man_n have_v write_v in_o french_a very_o learned_o and_o in_o a_o good_a language_n touch_v the_o matter_n of_o our_o religion_n yet_o nevertheless_o that_o sort_n of_o people_n can_v apply_v themselves_o to_o read_v those_o good_a book_n and_o can_v take_v no_o taste_n of_o they_o because_o that_o their_o mouth_n be_v not_o fit_v for_o such_o meat_n and_o that_o they_o be_v to_o precious_a for_o they_o for_o the_o ●doriseraunt_a and_o sweet_a flower_n hog_n smell_v not_o so_o sweet_a in_o the_o hog_n nose_n as_o the_o mire_n and_o dirt_n for_o that_o cause_n such_o carnal_a man_n take_v more_o pleasure_n and_o delight_v in_o the_o book_n that_o speak_v their_o language_n but_o the_o thing_n be_v more_o detestable_a to_o woman_n which_o delight_v to_o read_v ●ookes_n of_o bawdry_n and_o whoredom_n book_n for_o they_o understand_v they_o the_o better_a because_o they_o be_v of_o the_o earth_n and_o do_v speak_v of_o earthly_a matter_n and_o can_v comprehend_v the_o celestial_a language_n because_o it_o be_v not_o natural_a unto_o they_o now_o such_o book_n as_o they_o desire_v be_v not_o want_v unto_o they_o for_o there_o be_v enough_o of_o fool_n babble_n throughout_o the_o worlie_z which_o babble_n do_v serve_v but_o for_o seoff_v and_o test_v and_o which_o have_v no_o other_o care_n and_o apply_v their_o study_n but_o to_o please_v man_n and_o to_o nourish_v their_o vain_a curiosity_n love_v better_a to_o speak_v pleasant_a thing_n then_o salutary_a and_o to_o delight_n the_o flesh_n and_o the_o ear_n more_o than_o to_o edify_v the_o conscience_n yet_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o cause_n which_o move_v i_o to_o write_v and_o proceed_v after_o a_o other_o manner_n than_o those_o which_o have_v write_v before_o i_o for_o i_o consider_v that_o many_o do_v leave_v off_o to_o read_v they_o not_o only_o forbid_v because_o it_o be_v forbid_v in_o many_o country_n kingdom_n and_o segmory_n to_o read_v good_a book_n which_o speak_v of_o god_o
they_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o reproach_n unto_o we_o and_o bring_v before_o our_o eye_n at_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_o be_v it_o not_o better_o for_o we_o to_o follow_v the_o admonition_n which_o the_o holy_a apostle_n teach_v we_o say_v let_v your_o speech_n be_v always_o well_o savour_v 29._o and_o powder_v with_o salt_n that_o you_o may_v know_v how_o to_o answer_v every_o man_n let_v no_o filthy_a communication_n proceed_v out_o of_o your_o mouth_n but_o that_o which_o be_v good_a to_o edify_v withal_o when_o need_n be_v that_o it_o may_v have_v favour_n with_o the_o hearer_n and_o grieve_v not_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_o by_o who_o you_o be_v seal_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n let_v not_o 3_o fornication_n and_o all_o uncleanness_n or_o covetousness_n be_v once_o name_v among_o you_o as_o it_o becomn_v saint_n neither_o filthiness_n neither_o foolish_a talk_v neither_o jest_v which_o be_v not_o comely_a but_o rather_o give_v of_o thank_n behold_v the_o lesson_n which_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o gentile_n give_v unto_o the_o christian_n for_o to_o learn_v they_o how_o they_o ought_v to_o speak_v the_o which_o many_o have_v very_o evil_o study_v and_o keep_v for_o by_o their_o word_n and_o write_n they_o profit_v to_o none_o other_o end_n but_o to_o infect_v and_o poison_v the_o soul_n and_o to_o hinder_v a_o great_a many_o of_o good_a spirit_n to_o read_v better_a book_n and_o more_o profitable_a for_o their_o health_n and_o salvation_n for_o man_n can_v be_v idle_a and_o except_o that_o he_o do_v find_v foolish_a and_o wicked_a book_n for_o to_o apply_v therein_o his_o study_n he_o shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o seek_v better_a and_o to_o occupy_v therein_o altogether_o his_o mind_n without_o any_o detraction_n unto_o unprofitable_a thing_n i_o know_v very_o well_o that_o one_o may_v upon_o this_o reply_n that_o such_o man_n in_o play_v and_o jest_v do_v discover_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o world_n but_o it_o be_v better_a not_o to_o remove_v and_o discover_v they_o then_o to_o discover_v and_o blow_v they_o abroad_o after_o such_o a_o sort_n for_o by_o that_o manner_n of_o do_v they_o may_v rather_o make_v of_o a_o truth_n superstitious_a and_o a_o hypocrite_n a_o man_n without_o god_o and_o without_o religion_n than_o a_o good_a religious_a and_o holy_a man._n for_o notwithstanding_o that_o they_o do_v show_v forth_o the_o folly_n of_o man_n and_o that_o which_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v yet_o nevertheless_o they_o show_v not_o that_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o what_o be_v the_o true_a wisdom_n and_o the_o remedy_n for_o to_o redress_v such_o disease_n it_o be_v very_o easy_a to_o mock_v and_o scoff_n at_o lie_n and_o to_o show_v that_o which_o be_v not_o but_o it_o suffice_v not_o ercept_z one_o do_v show_v the_o truth_n and_o what_o it_o be_v it_o suffice_v not_o to_o know_v antichrist_n except_o we_o know_v jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v to_o teach_v after_o the_o manner_n as_o cicero_n despute_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o god_n the_o which_o be_v more_o proper_a 〈◊〉_d for_o to_o show_v that_o which_o be_v not_o god_n than_o who_o be_v god_n such_o manner_n of_o do_v bring_v no_o resolution_n to_o the_o conscience_n but_o leave_v it_o always_o in_o doubt_n and_o error_n and_o although_o those_o shall_v do_v no_o worse_o yet_o that_o shall_v be_v some_o thing_n and_o they_o shall_v not_o altogether_o lose_v their_o time_n for_o that_o they_o have_v incitate_v and_o prick_v man_n forward_o and_o put_v a_o desire_n in_o they_o to_o inquire_v of_o the_o truth_n for_o to_o know_v it_o for_o that_o be_v no_o little_a profit_n nor_o no_o little_a advantage_n that_o they_o have_v already_o bring_v it_o to_o that_o point_n but_o these_o here_o of_o who_o i_o do_v speak_v do_v not_o follow_v the_o stile_n i_o say_v not_o of_o some_o good_a divine_a nor_o only_o of_o some_o good_a panim_fw-la philosopher_n but_o do_v seem_v that_o they_o be_v altogether_o give_v to_o the_o imitation_n of_o lusian_n a_o man_n without_o god_n and_o lustanistes_n without_o religion_n a_o mocker_n and_o despiser_n of_o god_n and_o man_n if_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n to_o pastime_n to_o laugh_v play_v and_o jest_n at_o the_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n of_o to_o devout_a man_n capharde_n and_o hypocrite_n and_o of_o all_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o world_n we_o need_v not_o search_v for_o none_o other_o author_n and_o we_o have_v no_o need_n of_o these_o new_a lusianistes_n which_o be_v but_o as_o his_o little_a disciple_n for_o to_o carry_v his_o book_n after_o he_o for_o if_o we_o must_v make_v comparison_n of_o the_o language_n they_o approach_v nothing_o near_o to_o his_o eloquence_n if_o we_o must_v compare_v the_o spirit_n and_o the_o knowledge_n there_o be_v as_o much_o difference_n as_o be_v between_o the_o apprentice_n and_o the_o master_n wherefore_o if_o the_o write_n of_o lusian_n and_o the_o matter_n that_o be_v entreat_v off_o be_v very_o profitable_a and_o necessary_a unto_o those_o which_o can_v not_o read_v they_o in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n or_o be_v translate_v into_o the_o latin_a tongue_n i_o will_v counsel_v rather_o his_o disciple_n to_o travail_n and_o employ_v their_o eloquence_n to_o translate_v they_o in_o the_o french_a tongue_n then_o to_o forge_v and_o invent_v for_o we_o new_a lusians_n which_o do_v but_o steal_v from_o he_o his_o invention_n and_o argument_n for_o to_o attribute_v they_o unto_o themselves_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v the_o first_o author_n and_o inu●utours_n for_o how_o wicked_a so_o ever_o he_o have_v be_v and_o enemy_n to_o god_o and_o all_o religion_n yet_o we_o can_v deem_v but_o that_o he_o be_v a_o wise_a man_n a_o great_a orator_n and_o a_o philosopher_n and_o that_o he_o have_v write_v many_o good_a thing_n &_o a_o great_a deal_n better_o than_o those_o do_v here_o of_o which_o the_o faithful_a man_n may_v well_o profit_v so_o that_o he_o read_v they_o after_o a_o other_o spirit_n &_o intention_n than_o he_o have_v write_v they_o &_o that_o he_o do_v know_v to_o try_v the_o gold_n from_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o dross_n &_o to_o separate_v the_o poison_n from_o the_o good_a meat_n but_o those_o who_o i_o rebuke_v do_v teach_v nothing_o which_o can_v serve_v to_o the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n nor_o unto_o good_a manner_n nor_o to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o congregation_n nor_o to_o civility_n nor_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o natural_a human_a nor_o divine_a thing_n but_o to_o play_v the_o fool_n and_o to_o jest_v with_o all_o the_o world_n and_o to_o moeke_v and_o despise_v aswell_o the_o true_a christian_a religion_n as_o the_o superstition_n and_o abomination_n of_o antechrist_n for_o if_o they_o will_v speak_v one_o honest_a word_n it_o must_v be_v accompany_v with_o fifty_o unhonest_a word_n if_o they_o do_v set_v forth_o the_o truth_n it_o must_v be_v that_o it_o be_v always_o environ_v with_o a_o thousand_o infamy_n and_o slander_n as_o of_o damoisel_n and_o body_n keeper_n for_o to_o hide_v defend_v &_o countergard_n that_o it_o be_v not_o take_v uncover_v how_o much_o can_v that_o manner_n of_o writing_n &_o speak_v profit_n for_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v simple_a &_o will_v truth_n not_o have_v such_o coverture_n and_o cloak_n but_o will_v walk_v open_a and_o uncover_v ▪_o and_o if_o we_o have_v compassion_n of_o the_o civil_a and_o imperial_a law_n because_o that_o they_o be_v goodly_a in_o themselves_o be_v dishonour_v by_o the_o hem_n of_o those_o gloss_n &_o filth_n of_o bartolus_n and_o barbarous_a writer_n what_o may_v we_o truth_n say_v of_o the_o truth_n so_o noble_a a_o daughter_n of_o the_o eternal_a king_n accompany_v with_o damoisel_n so_o stink_a vile_a and_o dissorm_v with_o so_o many_o filthiness_n which_o do_v mar_v and_o take_v from_o she_o her_o beauty_n and_o to_o reply_v that_o it_o be_v not_o sure_a and_o without_o danger_n to_o speak_v truth_n in_o any_o other_o manner_n i_o do_v answer_n to_o the_o same_o that_o he_o be_v ●etter_a to_o hold_v his_o peace_n altogether_o then_o to_o preach_v it_o after_o such_o sort_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v better_a not_o to_o give_v meat_n unto_o a_o man_n then_o to_o give_v he_o poison_n for_o to_o kill_v he_o wherefore_o all_o thing_n count_v and_o reckenned_a i_o know_v not_o how_o one_o can_v conclude_v any_o other_o thing_n of_o such_o doctrine_n but_o that_o the_o author_n thereof_o do_v give_v occasion_n unto_o those_o which_o have_v any_o fear_n god_n to_o account_v they_o for_o lucianistes_n and_o unto_o those_o which_o have_v nothing_o or_o a_o very_a little_a to_o pull_v they_o away_o altogether_o and_o to_o make_v they_o recule_fw-la &_o go_v back_o from_o the_o truth_n more_o than_o they_o be_v as_o daily_o
petrus_n viretus_n the_o christian_a disputation_n by_o master_n peter_n viret_n divide_v into_o three_o part_n dialogue_n wise_a set_v out_o with_o such_o grace_n that_o it_o can_v be_v but_o that_o a_o man_n shall_v take_v great_a pleasure_n in_o the_o read_n thereof_o translate_v out_o of_o french_a into_o english_a by_o john_n brook_n of_o ashe_n math._n seven_o d._n 21._o not_o every_o one_o that_o say_v unto_o i_o lord_n lord_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o do_v my_o father_n will_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n mieulx_fw-fr vault_n mourir_fw-fr e_o vertv_n qve_fw-la viure_fw-fr en_fw-fr honcte_n ¶_o imprint_v at_o london_n by_o thomas_n east_n 1579._o to_o the_o most_o reverent_a father_n in_o god_n edmund_n by_o the_o permission_n of_o god_n archbishop_n of_o caunterbury_n primate_n and_o metrapolitan_a of_o england_n john_n brooke_n wish_v in_o this_o life_n prosperity_n and_o eternal_a felicity_n in_o christ_n our_o saviour_n read_v for_o my_o own_o private_a exercise_n and_o study_n the_o worthy_a work_n of_o master_n peter_n viret_n entitle_v the_o christian_a disputation_n right_a reverent_a father_n the_o sweet_a entry_n into_o the_o same_o with_o such_o pleasant_a allurement_n of_o comfortable_a matter_n so_o draw_v and_o toll_v i_o forwade_v as_o unneath_n i_o can_v cease_v until_o i_o have_v clean_o discourse_v and_o go_v through_o the_o whole_a work_n which_o have_v once_o accomplish_v and_o due_a consideration_n thereupon_o have_v according_a to_o my_o slender_a capacity_n i_o think_v i_o can_v not_o bestow_v my_o time_n in_o any_o thing_n more_o worthy_a grateful_a acceptance_n then_o in_o publish_v and_o set_v forth_o the_o same_o that_o other_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o my_o comfortable_a delight_n and_o delightful_a comfort_n take_v in_o read_v hereof_o not_o mean_v like_o a_o chorle_fw-mi alone_o to_o devour_v such_o a_o rich_a banquet_n furnish_v with_o so_o great_a a_o number_n of_o junket_n and_o delicate_a dish_n but_o to_o invite_v thereunto_o according_a to_o the_o intent_n of_o my_o author_n a_o company_n worthy_a such_o a_o feast_n which_o be_v first_o prepare_v and_o dress_v very_o cunning_o after_o the_o french_a fashion_n i_o have_v for_o the_o great_a good_a will_n and_o zeal_n ●owe_v unto_o my_o native_a country_n and_o for_o their_o better_a taste_n translate_v and_o set_v forth_o the_o same_o after_o the_o english_a manner_n wherein_o my_o small_a unlearned_a skill_n desirous_a of_o sure_a supportation_n and_o good_a defence_n crave_v your_o grace_n as_o chief_a to_o give_v i_o credit_n and_o countenance_n against_o the_o bite_a sting_n of_o zoilous_a person_n &_o heretical_a papist_n who_o stomach_n may_v in_o no_o wise_n digest_v or_o abide_v the_o good_a &_o wholesome_a diet_n in_o this_o feast_n prepare_v who_o unsavoury_a taste_n as_o i_o seek_v not_o to_o content_v so_o i_o fear_v not_o to_o offend_v trust_v your_o grace_n will_v accept_v this_o my_o bold_a enterprise_n as_o proceed_v of_o hearty_a good_a will_n towards_o you_o and_o earnest_a love_n bear_v unto_o my_o country_n prefer_v my_o zealous_a intent_n and_o the_o godliness_n of_o the_o matter_n unto_o the_o unworthiness_n and_o slender_a skill_n show_v in_o the_o translation_n as_o i_o shall_v daily_o pray_v unto_o almighty_a god_n to_o govern_v and_o direct_v your_o grace_n in_o all_o your_o affair_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n remain_v ever_o your_o grace_n bind_v during_o life_n john_n brooke_n john_n caluyn_n unto_o the_o reader_n the_o love_n of_o god_n our_o father_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v give_v to_o you_o and_o multiply_v from_o day_n to_o day_n through_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n there_o be_v a_o ancient_a poet_n which_o say_v that_o he_o which_o delight_v and_o profit_v altogether_o in_o his_o write_n have_v gain_v the_o price_n and_o favour_n towards_o all_o man_n the_o same_o be_v speak_v because_o of_o the_o diversity_n of_o nature_n it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o the_o only_a doctrine_n wherein_o we_o know_v it_o to_o be_v good_a and_o profitable_a aught_o to_o suffice_v we_o for_o to_o incitate_v and_o provoke_v we_o to_o read_v willing_o a_o book_n to_o give_v and_o bestow_v thereon_o all_o our_o study_n to_o love_v and_o set_v by_o it_o and_o final_o to_o take_v pleasure_n in_o it_o but_o there_o be_v a_o great_a many_o and_o well_o near_o the_o most_o part_n which_o will_v be_v a_o great_a deal_n better_o please_v that_o one_o shall_v teach_v they_o after_o a_o gentle_a &_o pleasant_a fashion_n than_o otherwise_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o as_o in_o recreate_v themselves_o they_o may_v profit_v &_o receive_v instruction_n lve_v then_o as_o those_o which_o occupy_v themselves_o to_o make_v book_n of_o pastime_n vain_a and_o frivolous_a &_o which_o cause_n the_o world_n to_o read_v they_o be_v to_o be_v vituperate_v and_o despise_v although_o they_o have_v no_o corruption_n in_o they_o so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n those_o which_o have_v the_o grace_n so_o to_o teach_v that_o they_o do_v both_o delight_n and_o profit_v the_o reader_n through_o their_o pleasant_a stile_n be_v double_a to_o be_v praise_v and_o in_o very_a deed_n that_o be_v a_o virtue_n &_o a_o gift_n which_o be_v not_o in_o all_o man_n yea_o often_o time_n the_o wise_a can_v attain_v unto_o it_o and_o which_o be_v more_o do_v make_v themselves_o to_o be_v laugh_v at_o in_o desn_v that_o which_o be_v not_o give_v unto_o they_o for_o a_o man_n which_o desire_v to_o use_v merry_a conceit_n and_o jest_n aught_o to_o beware_v of_o two_o vice_n the_o one_o be_v that_o he_o do_v nothing_o of_o compulsion_n or_o laugh_v over_o much_o as_o there_o be_v a_o great_a many_o which_o have_v cold_a laughter_n the_o which_o do_v seem_v as_o though_o they_o be_v pull_v out_o of_o their_o throat_n by_o force_n the_o other_o be_v not_o to_o use_v bawdy_a &_o silthy_a talk_n the_o which_o be_v call_v in_o latin_a scurrilitas_fw-la in_o our_o language_n pleasant_a jest_n but_o to_o keep_v the_o mean_a that_o be_v to_o know_v how_o to_o speak_v effectual_o and_o with_o a_o good_a grace_n so_o for_o to_o recreate_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o speak_v foolish_o at_o all_o adventure_n or_o uncomely_a which_o be_v no_o common_a virtue_n i_o do_v speak_v this_o by_o reason_n of_o these_o present_a dialogue_n out_o of_o which_o a_o man_n may_v so_o gather_v good_a instruction_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o laugh_v for_o the_o matter_n of_o itself_o be_v very_o pleasant_a and_o be_v set_v out_o with_o such_o grace_n that_o it_o can_v be_v but_o that_o a_o man_n shall_v take_v great_a pleasure_n in_o the_o read_n thereof_o our_o brother_n and_o companion_n in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n peter_n viret_n who_o be_v the_o author_n have_v by_o nature_n the_o virtue_n which_o i_o say_v to_o be_v requisite_a in_o that_o man_n which_o will_v meddle_v himself_o therein_o it_o be_v virtue_n true_a that_o as_o in_o all_o other_o work_v he_o give_v himself_o unto_o a_o better_a study_n and_o of_o great_a weight_n so_o in_o these_o dialogue_n his_o principal_a intent_n be_v not_o to_o delight_v the_o ear_n and_o in_o very_a deed_n that_o shall_v be_v but_o a_o small_a labour_n and_o a_o pain_n evil_n be_v stow_v of_o a_o man_n of_o such_o wit_n and_o knowledge_n furthermore_o beside_o the_o gift_n that_o he_o have_v of_o god_n he_o be_v call_v unto_o a_o more_o high_a calling_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o matter_n that_o he_o have_v take_v in_o hand_n to_o entreat_v off_o sheweth_z that_o he_o teach_v by_o order_n of_o pastime_n and_o merry_a jest_n he_o pretend_v notwithstanding_o the_o right_a doctrine_n as_o the_o true_a mark_n to_o shoot_v at_o mingle_v with_o the_o same_o some_o merry_a conceit_n as_o a_o companion_n therewith_o all_o yea_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o this_o book_n be_v a_o suffient_fw-la witness_n that_o be_v have_v a_o singular_a dextentie_n to_o do_v it_o yea_o even_o as_o much_o as_o he_o will_v himself_o that_o be_v to_o say_v as_z much_o as_o be_v needful_a or_o convenient_a i_o do_v know_v that_o it_o be_v a_o dangerous_a thing_n and_o that_o no_o man_n ought_v at_o the_o first_o sight_n to_o allow_v a_o book_n but_o i_o fear_v not_o to_o have_v any_o rebuke_n of_o good_a man_n &_o of_o such_o as_o be_v of_o sound_n judgement_n to_o have_v commend_v the_o read_n of_o that_o book_n as_o a_o book_n in_o which_o the_o time_n shall_v be_v well_o bestow_v i_o need_v not_o to_o bring_v witness_n nor_o to_o speak_v among_o those_o which_o know_v the_o man_n this_o only_a knowledge_n will_v suffice_v for_o to_o assure_v they_o that_o they_o can_v say●e_v to_o stay_v themselves_o upon_o it_o but_o because_o that_o it_o may_v
use_v in_o the_o censecration_n and_o hallow_n of_o they_o be_v a_o witness_n in_o the_o which_o you_o do_v pray_v god_n that_o it_o will_v tuumde_v please_v he_o to_o send_v his_o holy_a angel_n from_o heaven_n to_o bless_v and_o sanctify_v these_o ash_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v a_o healthful_a remedy_n unto_o all_o those_o which_o do_v call_v upon_o his_o ●_o name_n and_o that_o althose_o which_o the_o pour_v they_o upon_o they_o may_v receive_v bealish_a of_o their_o body_n and_o safeguard_n of_o their_o soul_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o their_o sin_n those_o ash_n shall_v have_v as_o much_o virtue_n as_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n they_o shall_v have_v yet_o more_o show_v and_o colour_n as_o already_o have_v be_v declare_v to_o restore_v the_o ancient_a jewisth_n ceremonye_n 2._o and_o to_o make_v ash_n of_o the_o young_a heifer_n then_o to_o do_v that_o that_o they_o do_v or_o to_o make_v they_o of_o a_o calf_n as_o the_o pomaines_n do_v for_o they_o shall_v have_v more_o colour_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o the_o which_o they_o shall_v find_v no_o institution_n of_o their_o ash_n hillarius_n if_o they_o do_v not_o find_v it_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n ought_v it_o not_o to_o suffice_v thou_o that_o it_o be_v find_v in_o the_o balender_n of_o ovid._n but_o they_o do_v add_v moreover_o that_o the_o vestal_n with_o those_o consecrate_a ash_n for_o the_o purgation_n of_o the_o people_n not_o only_o make_v with_o a_o calf_n but_o dead_a also_o with_o stalk_n and_o pod_n of_o bean_n have_v perfume_n of_o brimstone_n of_o torch_n of_o the_o laurel_n or_o bay_a tree_n of_o the_o dliffes_n of_o rosemary_n and_o other_o like_a sweet_a and_o oderiferant_a tree_n and_o herb_n of_o which_o your_o missell_n teach_v you_o to_o make_v your_o ash_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o bough_n which_o be_v bless_v the_o year_n before_o and_o of_o the_o band_n and_o begin_v which_o they_o do_v put_v on_o the_o little_a child_n in_o their_o baptism_n and_o confirmation_n do_v thou_o think_v eusebius_n that_o those_o thing_n do_v evil_n agree_v with_o your_o ceremony_n and_o the_o purgation_n that_o you_o have_v nas_fw-la well_o for_o the_o quick_a as_o for_o the_o dead_a for_o sith_o that_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o you_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o you_o have_v a_o purgatory_n both_o for_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o but_o i_o have_v yet_o forget_v that_o at_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o dead_a the_o paynim_n do_v shut_v their_o temple_n and_o cover_v and_o hide_v their_o image_n as_o ovid_n have_v in_o like_a manner_n descry_v by_o these_o verse_n the_o god_n of_o church_n be_v shut_v up_o 2._o with_o close_a and_o privy_a door_n and_o alter_v want_v sacrifice_n none_o incense_v on_o they_o pour_v then_o do_v poor_a soul_n and_o body_n dead_a commit_v to_o the_o grave_n still_o stray_v abroad_o and_o feed_v on_o that_o set_v for_o they_o then_o to_o have_v the_o athenian_n also_o use_v ceremony_n altogether_o like_a unto_o that_o feast_n of_o praxiergide_a which_o they_o celebrate_v in_o athens_n in_o the_o month_n of_o february_n to_o the_o which_o the_o one_o hold_v the_o secret_a mystery_n one_o other_o pull_v down_o all_o the_o ornament_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o a_o other_o cover_v the_o image_n that_o be_v there_o do_v not_o you_o receive_v and_o use_v yet_o at_o this_o day_n all_o in_o all_o those_o same_o manner_n of_o do_n the_o which_o you_o have_v refer_v to_o lent_n and_o do_v stop_v the_o 1●_o nose_n of_o your_o idol_n and_o hang_v a_o veil_n before_o they_o for_o to_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v take_v no_o more_o from_o you_o then_o from_o the_o jew_n i_o know_v not_o whether_o you_o be_v afraid_a lest_o they_o shall_v smell_v the_o garlic_n which_o you_o eat_v in_o lent._n i_o will_v leave_v off_o to_o speak_v of_o other_o sperstition_n &_o idolatry_n which_o you_o have_v borrow_v of_o the_o paynim_n for_o i_o shall_v never_o make_v a_o end_n but_o i_o will_v only_o show_v one_o part_n of_o those_o which_o be_v descend_v from_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o dead_a celebrate_v among_o the_o paynim_n and_o of_o the_o purgation_n y_fw-fr they_o have_v aswell_o for_o the_o quick_a as_o for_o the_o dead_a to_o the_o end_n thou_o shall_v know_v that_o even_o as_o you_o have_v follow_v they_o for_o y_fw-fr purgation_n of_o the_o bue_n so_o have_v you_o do_v in_o those_o of_o the_o dead_a theophilus_n it_o seem_v also_o a'n_z tertulian_n will_v refer_v that_o which_o y_fw-mi corinthian_n 29_o do_v baptize_v themselves_o for_o the_o dead_a to_o the_o februale_n &_o purifiecation_n of_o the_o paynim_n as_o let_v to_o understand_v that_o where_o the_o corinthian_n do_v baptize_v themselves_o for_o the_o dead_a be_v a_o superstition_n which_o they_o do_v yet_o keep_v of_o their_o ancient_a custom_n crcept_v y_fw-mi in_o steed_n of_o that_o panish_a superstition_n they_o do_v abuse_v that_o baptism_n think_v in_o it_o aught_o to_o serve_v for_o the_o dead_a as_o we_o do_v see_v in_o our_o time_n that_o they_o have_v apply_v it_o unto_o the_o lord_n supper_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o mass_n that_o which_o dead_a the_o superstitin_n papist_n do_v think_v to_o profit_v the_o dead_a in_o who_o name_n the_o priest_n do_v communicate_v and_o sing_v it_o although_o that_o the_o word_n of_o tertulian_n be_v obscure_a and_o very_a hard_a yet_o to_o cramine_fw-la they_o together_o it_o seem_v very_o well_o that_o he_o mean_v the_o same_o and_o the_o ancient_n have_v almost_o all_o take_v it_o after_o that_o manner_n notwithstanding_o that_o other_o do_v take_v it_o in_o a_o other_o sense_n and_o do_v interpret_v that_o place_n of_o saint_n paul_n of_o those_o which_o do_v cause_v 15._o themselves_o to_o be_v baptize_v when_o they_o be_v in_o extreme_a sickness_n and_o near_a unto_o death_n for_o the_o custom_n be_v that_o those_o which_o come_v to_o the_o say_v which_o man_n call_v the_o catechumenis_fw-la because_o they_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o faith_n defer_v and_o christian_a religion_n do_v not_o of_o custom_n cause_n themselves_o to_o be_v sodedine_o baptize_v until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v well_o instruct_v and_o teach_v in_o the_o secret_a mystery_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o therefore_o bycayse_v they_o have_v the_o baptism_n in_o great_a reverence_n and_o do_v believe_v that_o through_o the_o same_o they_o have_v full_a remission_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o all_o their_o sin_n and_o be_v altogether_o renew_a many_o tarry_v and_o refer_v to_o be_v baptize_v until_o they_o be_v like_a to_o die_v think_v that_o when_o they_o die_v in_o such_o a_o state_n they_o be_v more_o purewr_n and_o clean_a from_o their_o sin_n the_o which_o they_o can_v never_o have_v do_v if_o they_o have_v not_o true_o believe_v and_o hope_v for_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n although_o that_o the_o apostle_n allow_v not_o such_o manner_n of_o do_a those_o which_o do_v take_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n after_o such_o a_o sense_n and_o meaning_n be_v induce_v to_o do_v it_o because_o that_o they_o think_v that_o if_o the_o apostle_n do_v understand_v and_o mean_v that_o of_o the_o panish_a superstition_n that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v pass_v it_o over_o without_o dead_a rebuke_v that_o error_n and_o do_v expound_v it_o that_o they_o shall_v baptise_v themselves_o of_o the_o dead_a that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o dead_a and_o as_z people_n which_o repute_v themseluesalready_a dead_a i_o have_v the_o willing_a touch_v this_o for_o to_o give_v occasion_n unto_o the_o reader_n to_o examine_v well_o that_o place_n and_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o ancient_n and_o other_o hillarius_n we_o have_v sufficient_o entreat_v of_o that_o matter_n eusebius_n and_o think_v that_o thou_o shall_v have_v somewhat_o to_o do_v to_o separate_v against_o that_o which_o we_o have_v propound_v for_o to_o prove_v that_o your_o ceremony_n &_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v take_v of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o i_o have_v rehearse_v unto_o thou_o one_o part_n of_o the_o pope_n calendar_n and_o i_o seem_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o give_v i_o good_a wage_n for_o to_o end_v they_o all_o and_o his_o feast_n as_o ovid_n have_v write_v those_o of_o the_o roman_n eusebius_n if_o thou_o have_v as_o well_o read_v the_o work_n of_o saint_n augustine_n and_o of_o other_o ancient_a doctor_n as_o the_o book_n of_o ovid_n and_o other_o poet_n and_o autor_n of_o the_o paynim_n thou_o will_v speak_v otherwise_o and_o thou_o shall_v not_o have_v fall_v into_o such_o deep_a root_n of_o error_n and_o heresles_fw-mi in_o which_o thou_o be_v wrap_v in_o in_o such_o for_o that_o thou_o
can_v not_o come_v forth_o what_o so_o ever_o thing_n one_o may_v propound_v to_o the_o contrary_n hillarius_n i_o glad_o desire_v if_o that_o i_o be_o plounge_v in_o so_o deep_o e_fw-la error_n as_o thou_o say_v that_o i_o be_o that_o thou_o will_v aid_v and_o help_v i_o to_o come_v out_o of_o it_o and_o if_o i_o have_v not_o read_v the_o ancient_a doctor_n so_o diligent_o as_o thou_o think_v that_o thou_o haste_v read_v i_o will_v that_o therein_o thou_o will_v amend_v my_o fault_n and_o that_o thou_o can_v show_v i_o so_o good_a out_o of_o their_o book_n that_o i_o may_v have_v occasion_n to_o content_v myself_o but_o i_o do_v now_o know_v by_o experience_n that_o that_o which_o i_o think_v be_v true_a for_o i_o doubt_v very_o much_o that_o even_o as_o i_o have_v say_v at_o the_o beginning_n all_o thy_o artillery_n canon_n and_o munitition_n with_o thy_o matter_n gunner_n eccius_n shall_v be_v all_o consume_v into_o smoke_n as_o it_o appear_v unto_o i_o at_o this_o present_a i_o do_v look_v for_o certain_a strong_a argument_n and_o that_o a_o great_a number_n of_o they_o but_o if_o thou_o have_v no_o other_o weapon_n thou_o be_v not_o so_o well_o arm_v as_o thou_o vaunt_v thyself_o except_o peradventure_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n more_o excellent_a in_o the_o arriere_n garde_fw-fr eusebius_n sing_v not_o the_o triumph_n before_o the_o victory_n for_o thou_o be_v yet_o very_o far_o from_o thy_o reckon_n and_o from_o that_o thou_o think_v the_o strong_a be_v yet_o to_o do_v but_o with_o much_o a_o do_v one_o can_v speak_v a_o word_n before_o thou_o thou_o be_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o woman_n for_o thou_o must_v always_o be_v balinge_v and_o thou_o will_v rather_o die_v but_o that_o thou_o will_v have_v the_o last_o word_n thomas_n have_v grant_v unto_o i_o this_o day_n to_o put_v forth_o my_o reason_n and_o to_o answer_v and_o rely_v unto_o you_o but_o even_o as_o theophilus_n and_o you_o do_v so_o must_v i_o yet_o have_v a_o few_o day_n respite_n before_o that_o i_o can_v bring_v that_o that_o i_o have_v to_o say_v against_o you_o theophilus_n thou_o do_v wrong_v to_o complain_v as_o for_o my_o part_n of_o thou_o can_v not_o say_v that_o i_o ever_o do_v interrrupt_v thy_o talk_n and_o but_o that_o i_o have_v always_o suffer_v all_o that_o thatthou_a will_v speak_v hear_v thou_o in_o all_o patience_n and_o modesty_n thomas_n i_o be_o well_o content_a for_o my_o part_n to_o give_v unto_o thou_o the_o day_n which_o i_o ought_v to_o have_v for_o myself_o if_o this_o here_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o thou_o for_o i_o have_v not_o so_o much_o learning_n and_o knowledge_n but_o that_o i_o be_o more_o fit_a to_o be_v a_o hearer_n then_o a_o doctor_n hillarius_n we_o will_v give_v thou_o as_o long_a time_n as_o thou_o will_v but_o peradventure_o you_o do_v not_o undestand_v where_o eusebius_n grief_n lie_v and_o on_o which_o side_n his_o shoe_n wring_v he_o i_o know_v not_o whether_o he_o have_v yet_o eat_v or_o drink_v to_o day_n as_o for_o i_o yesterday_n journey_n admonish_v i_o to_o take_v a_o little_a &_o to_o drink_v a_o draught_n of_o wine_n before_o i_o come_v the_o which_o thing_n be_v the_o cause_n that_o i_o be_o not_o so_o much_o thirst_o as_o i_o be_v the_o day_n before_o although_o that_o we_o have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n about_o the_o fire_n as_o for_o thomas_n i_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v be_v no_o more_o evil_a avuise_v than_o i_o and_o that_o he_o be_v no_o less_o dispose_v to_o drink_v in_o the_o morning_n touch_v theophilus_n and_o eusebius_n i_o fear_v very_o much_o but_o that_o they_o be_v yet_o fast_v for_o theophilus_n be_v a_o man_n very_o studious_a and_o fover_v which_o to_o eat_v little_a &_o late_o infomuch_o that_o i_o do_v more_o great_o esteem_v his_o sobriety_n &_o daily_a &_o ordinary_a abstmence_n than_o the_o fast_n of_o you_o priest_n &_o monk_n as_o for_o e●sel_n m●_z he_o be_v so_o superstitious_a that_o he_o favour_v ●em_v what_o mooukish_a wherefore_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o for_o to_o make_v have_v obedient_a to_o you_o holy_a mother_n the_o romish_a church_n do_v fast_o fith_o that_o according_a to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o same_o it_o be_v the_o day_n of_o fast_o eusebius_n it_o be_v needful_a that_o i_o and_o other_o do_v fast_o for_o i_o be_o certain_a that_o if_o the_o fastin●g_n have_v none_o other_o maintainer_n than_o thou_o and_o such_o as_o thou_o be_v they_o shall_v be_v soon_o abolish_v hellarm_n i_o know_v not_o what_o i_o shall_v voe_n but_o at_o the_o least_o i_o be_o at_o this_o day_n aid_v to_o maintain_v they_o and_o a_o little_a want_v but_o that_o i_o have_v learn_v thou_o to_o fast_a after_o the_o ancient_a manner_n but_o thou_o ought_v not_o to_o find_v that_o strange_a for_o sith_o that_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o fast_v it_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n requisite_a to_o practice_v it_o yet_o nevertheless_o the_o eveme_a and_o the_o night_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v which_o be_v the_o time_n and_o the_o hour_n that_o the_o ancient_n use_v to_o rest_n themselves_o on_o the_o fast_a day_n but_o to_o the_o end_n thou_o have_v none_o occasion_n to_o complain_v i_o think_v it_o best_o that_o thou_o do_v defer_v that_o which_o thou_o have_v yet_o to_o say_v until_o after_o drink_v &_o for_o my_o part_n i_o promise_v thou_o to_o suffer_v thou_o to_o speak_v as_o much_o as_o thou_o will_v and_o i_o will_v keep_v so_o good_a silence_n that_o thou_o shall_v not_o check_v i_o as_o thou_o have_v now_o do_v eusebius_n i_o be_o content_a with_o that_o thou_o say_v so_o thou_o do_v keep_v thy_o promise_n but_o i_o great_o fear_v that_o thou_o will_v do_v nothing_o hillarius_n thou_o shall_v see_v &_o before_o that_o thou_o do_v sleep_v thou_o shall_v have_v the_o experience_n for_o i_o will_v leave_v it_o ot_fw-mi thou_o and_o to_o theophilus_n to_o do_v then_o let_v we_o go_v to_o refresh_v our_o body_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n preprare_fw-la thyself_o fot_o to_o fight_v valiant_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o four_o dialogue_n because_o that_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n do_v glory_n in_o themselves_o that_o they_o have_v the_o ancient_a doctor_n on_o their_o side_n for_o to_o maintain_v their_o abuse_n and_o superstition_n in_o this_o dialogue_n eusebius_n travail_v all_o that_o he_o can_v for_o to_o uphold_v his_o religion_n &_o to_o prove_v his_o intent_n by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a doctor_n unto_o who_o theophilus_n show_v how_o he_o corrupt_v and_o pervert_v the_o sense_n and_o intelligence_n of_o their_o word_n and_o how_o they_o do_v condemn_v the_o error_n and_o abuse_n of_o the_o papist_n by_o occasion_n whereof_o be_v also_o declare_v wherein_o sometime_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n have_v be_v deceive_v and_o overcome_v follow_v more_o the_o opinion_n of_o man_n than_o the_o certain_a witness_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o when_o &_o how_o the_o papistical_a purgatory_n have_v begin_v what_o foundation_n stay_v &_o shore_n it_o have_v it_o be_v also_o ample_o entreat_v of_o what_o original_a and_o beginning_n the_o private_a and_o particular_a mass_n come_v and_o the_o custom_n to_o sing_v they_o for_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o despise_v of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o supper_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o of_o the_o true_a christian_a communion_n and_o therefore_o this_o dialogue_n be_v entitle_v the_o age_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o of_o purgatory_n because_o that_o it_o show_v how_o it_o be_v bear_v increase_a &_o augment_v &_o the_o purgatory_n in_o like_a manner_n ¶_o the_o four_o dialogue_n which_o be_v call_v the_o age_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o of_o purgatory_n thomas_n as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v presume_v by_o the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o eusebius_n i_o trust_v that_o i_o shall_v hear_v you_o to_o bring_v forth_o a_o matter_n the_o which_o will_v please_v i_o well_o &_o which_o i_o desire_v great_o to_o understand_v for_o i_o see_v daily_o that_o man_n do_v blame_v you_o which_o be_v take_v and_o account_v for_o heretic_n to_o corrupt_v &_o pervert_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n man_n do_v unto_o you_o this_o honour_n to_o say_v that_o you_o will_v not_o receive_v the_o witness_n nor_o the_o authority_n but_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o that_o you_o do_v prove_v by_o the_o same_o all_o that_o which_o you_o put_v forth_o hut_n all_o the_o evil_a be_v in_o this_o that_o you_o take_v they_o to_o your_o advanntage_n and_o turn_v and_o wrest_v they_o to_o your_o sense_n and_o carnal_a intelligence_n and_o therefore_o you_o will_v not_o receive_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o good_a doctor_n but_o i_o will_v see_v now_o how_o you_o can_v bear_v it_o and_o whether_o the_o
we_o may_v take_v it_o for_o a_o certain_a rule_n that_o it_o have_v not_o belfe_n write_v by_o any_o prophet_n or_o man_n worthy_a to_o be_v account_v for_o such_o a_o one_o for_o the_o prophet_n have_v write_v in_o their_o proper_a language_n to_o wit_n hebrew_n or_o in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o prophet_n chaldee_n since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o captinite_a of_o babylon_n furthermore_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o know_v that_o that_o book_n have_v be_v write_v long_o time_n after_o the_o return_n of_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n into_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o age_n of_o esdras_n nehemias_n prophet_n aggeus_n zachary_n &_o malachy_n sithence_o which_o we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o the_o people_n of_o god_n have_v have_v any_o prophet_n that_o have_v write_v any_o thing_n nor_o other_o book_n of_o a_o certain_a and_o authentic_a author_n wherefore_o by_o good_a right_a this_o here_o be_v account_v for_o apocrypha_fw-la and_o although_o there_o be_v no_o other_o reason_n for_o to_o diminish_v his_o authority_n but_o the_o excuse_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o say_a book_n make_v in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o work_n that_o aught_o to_o suffice_v thou_o read_v the_o last_o chapter_n and_o thou_o shall_v see_v it_o by_o experience_n if_o he_o have_v béne_v certain_a through_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_o that_o all_o that_o which_o he_o have_v write_v proceed_v from_o he_o as_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n have_v do_v wherefore_o shall_v he_o excuse_v himself_o both_o of_o the_o stile_n of_o apostle_n the_o manner_n of_o write_n and_o of_o the_o fault_n that_o he_o may_v have_v commit_v if_o he_o have_v be_v always_o inspire_v with_o the_o same_o spirit_n by_o which_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n have_v speak_v he_o will_v have_v speak_v sure_o and_o in_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n as_o those_o who_o without_o excuse_v themselves_o have_v say_v the_o lord_n have_v speak_v it_o and_o saint_n paul_n with_o what_o authority_n speak_v he_o affirm_v that_o the_o gospel_n which_o he_o have_v preach_v be_v so_o certain_a that_o although_o 8_o a_o angel_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n for_o to_o bring_v any_o other_o unto_o you_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v but_o accurse_v learn_v then_o eusebius_n to_o discern_v the_o book_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n form_n the_o other_o and_o think_v not_o that_o the_o church_n have_v hold_v for_o canonical_a that_o second_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n but_o as_o a_o book_n which_o be_v not_o altogether_o to_o be_v reject_v and_o of_o which_o it_o may_v serve_v the_o church_n for_o declaration_n of_o the_o scripture_n because_o of_o the_o history_n contain_v in_o the_o same_o which_o do_v give_v a_o certain_a open_v for_o the_o intelligence_n of_o the_o antiquity_n as_o the_o history_n of_o joseph_n do_v yet_o nevertheless_o if_o one_o mark_v they_o well_o it_o shall_v be_v easle_n to_o judge_v that_o the_o first_o and_o the_o second_o be_v not_o all_o of_o one_o author_n not_o only_o by_o the_o diversity_n of_o the_o stile_n 〈◊〉_d also_o because_o that_o in_o the_o second_o be_v reiterate_a some_o bistory_n and_o many_o thing_n which_o already_o have_v be_v intreale_v ●●_o in_o the_o first_o and_o a_o great_a deal_n better_o than_o they_o be_v in_o this_o if_o one_o do_v find_v in_o any_o other_o book_n worthy_a to_o be_v credit_v of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n any_o like_a place_n unto_o that_o which_o thou_o have_v allege_v the_o argument_n shall_v have_v some_o colour_n by_o the_o show_n that_o the_o other_o will_v give_v unto_o it_o but_o forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v alone_o his_o witness_n be_v not_o sufficient_a as_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o one_o of_o the_o other_o for_o god_n be_v as_o much_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o one_o only_a witness_n as_o god._n by_o a_o thousand_o where_o a_o thousand_o witness_n of_o man_n without_o the_o same_o of_o god_n ought_v not_o to_o bold_a any_o place_n in_o the_o religion_n but_o since_o that_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o suffrage_n &_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a have_v begin_v to_o have_v creep_v into_o the_o church_n this_o book_n also_o have_v begin_v to_o take_v great_a authority_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o it_o often_o be_v read_v and_o song_n in_o the_o popish_a church_n than_o those_o that_o cont●yned_v more_o sure_a doctrine_n and_o thu_o ought_v also_o to_o understand_v that_o the_o ancient_n have_v sometime_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o y_fw-es canonical_a apocrypha_fw-la &_o ecclesiastical_a book_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o author_n which_o have_v expound_v the_o creed_n the_o which_o some_o do_v think_v that_o it_o be_v saint_n cyprian_n other_o that_o it_o be_v ruffin_n but_o whosoever_o if_o be_v of_o they_o both_o they_o be_v both_o of_o they_o very_o ancient_a and_o have_v divide_v those_o book_n after_o that_o sort_n the_o must_v know_v say_v he_o that_o thou_o be_v other_o book_n after_o the_o canonical_a which_o be_v not_o call_v of_o the_o ancient_n &_o of_o our_o predecessor_n canonical_a but_o c●●lessasticall_a as_o be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o solomon_n and_o the_o other_o wisdom_n which_o be_v call_v jesus_n the_o son_n of_o syrach_n the_o which_o book_n be_v among_o the_o latin_n by_o that_o general_a title_n call_v ecclessasticus_n by_o the_o which_o word_n the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n be_v not_o name_v but_o the_o quantity_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o book_n of_o toby_n be_v of_o the_o same_o order_n and_o of_o judith_n and_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n the_o which_o they_o will_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v all_o read_v in_o the_o church_n but_o they_o will_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v settle_v forth_o for_o to_o conform_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o faith_n by_o they_o the_o other_o scripture_n they_o have_v call_v apocrypha_fw-la the_o which_o they_o will_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n thou_o 〈◊〉_d see_v here_o most_o plain_o how_o that_o they_o do_v attribute_v more_o authority_n unto_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n then_o unto_o the_o eccleslasticall_a scripture_n and_o unto_o the_o ecclessastical_a more_o than_o unto_o the_o apocrypha_n but_o they_o have_v not_o yet_o nevertheless_o esteem_v those_o eccleslassastical_a which_o they_o have_v many_o time_n call_v apocrypha_n of_o equal_a and_o such_o authority_n as_o the_o divine_a scripture_n nor_o they_o have_v call_v they_o eccleslasticall_a for_o that_o cause_n but_o because_o that_o they_o be_v in_o such_o reputation_n that_o one_o niyght_v read_v and_o sign_n they_o in_o the_o church_n the_o w●●●●_n be_v not_o permit_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n or_o because_o that_o their_o antiquity_n or_o holiness_n of_o their_o author_n add_v unto_o they_o a_o little_a more_o authority_n then_o unto_o the_o other_o thomas_n by_o that_o account_n eusebius_n then_o shall_v be_v unweapen_v of_o his_o principal_a staff_n that_o he_o think_v to_o have_v eusebius_n if_o they_o will_v after_o that_o sort_n make_v the_o book_n either_o canonical_a or_o apocrypha_n at_o they_o re_o pleasure_n it_o be_v mere_a folly_n to_o disput_n with_o they_o for_o all_o those_o which_o be_v not_o to_o their_o mind_n shall_v be_v apocrypha_fw-la theophilus_n if_o thou_o will_v not_o be_v confen●ed_v with_o the_o reason_n by_o i_o allege_v go_v and_o plead_v against_o saint_n hierome_n sancta_fw-la and_o your_o decree_n if_o the_o ancient_n have_v not_o use_v judgement_n and_o wisdom_n how_o many_o book_n will_v the_o heretic_n have_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n and_o of_o their_o disciple_n the_o which_o they_o have_v re●●csed_v they_o follow_v that_o same_o rule_n which_o i_o have_v give_v unto_o thou_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o your_o decree_n which_o be_v a_o great_a roll_n of_o they_o but_o i_o will_v yet_o do_v more_o to_o the_o end_n i_o leave_v the●_z not_o a_o occasion_n to_o be_v miscontent_v w_o i_o i_o be_o content_a by_o way_n of_o disputation_n to_o put_v the_o case_n that_o you_o book_n shall_v be_v autentick_a &_o of_o a_o divine_a authority_n and_o although_o purgatory_n it_o be_v so_o it_o will_v serve_v thou_o yet_o nevertheless_o nothing_o at_o all_o for_o to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n &_o that_o we_o must_v offer_v for_o the_o dead_a to_o such_o intent_n and_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o you_o do_v make_v it_o and_o for_o to_o declare_v this_o unto_o thou_o more_o plain_o i_o demand_v of_o thou_o for_o to_o begin_v first_o ou●_n matter_n in_o what_o time_n be_v that_o make_v which_o the_o history_n contain_v be_v it_o before_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n or_o afterward_o eusebius_n before_o theophilus_n tell_v i_o moreover_o be_v christ_n the_o purgatory_n in_o that_o time_n such_o as_o thou_o believe_v it_o be_v
according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o their_o logic_n one_o can_v draw_v a_o consequence_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v of_o proposition_n altogether_o negative_n if_o then_o of_o negative_n a_o consequence_n negative_a be_v nothing_o sequitur_fw-la worth_a how_o shall_v the_o affirmative_a be_v good_a such_o as_o you_o will_v here_o conclude_v why_o one_o you_o not_o conclude_v rather_o this_o sin_n be_v not_o pardon_v in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v it_o shall_v be_v then_o never_o pardon_v for_o if_o there_o be_v a_o pardon_n it_o can_v be_v but_o in_o this_o world_n or_o in_o the_o other_o the_o consequence_n after_o this_o manner_n shall_v be_v good_a for_o the_o antecedent_n have_v comprehend_v all_o the_o time_n and_o place_n to_o who_o the_o sin_n may_v be_v pardon_v and_o after_o that_o sort_n do_v saint_n mark_v expound_v it_o of_o 19_o who_o the_o gloze_n be_v more_o certain_a then_o you_o for_o in_o steed_n of_o that_o that_o saint_n matthew_n have_v say_v neither_o in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o other_o he_o have_v say_v never_o wherein_o it_o appear_v that_o those_o two_o proposition_n be_v equivalent_a and_o of_o equality_n that_o sin_n be_v not_o pardon_v neither_o in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o other_o and_o that_o sin_n be_v never_o eq●poll●●is_fw-la pardon_v furthermore_o you_o do_v contesse_n that_o it_o must_v be_v that_o the_o fault_n of_o sin_n the_o which_o make_v man_n subject_a to_o damnation_n be_v already_o pardon_v in_o this_o world_n &_o that_o there_o remain_v but_o the_o pain_n the_o which_o he_o must_v bear_v and_o suffer_v in_o purgatory_n for_o you_o do_v put_v none_o other_o difference_n pardon_n between_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o bless_a which_o be_v already_o at_o rest_n and_o those_o of_o purgatory_n and_o the_o damn_a but_o that_o the_o saint_n which_o be_v already_o in_o paradise_n be_v pardon_v of_o pain_n and_o fault_n those_o which_o be_v in_o purgatory_n be_v not_o pardon_v but_o of_o the_o fault_n but_o they_o must_v hear_v and_o suffer_v the_o pain_n due_a to_o sin_n until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o have_v satisfy_v for_o it_o and_o that_o they_o be_v perfect_o purge_v but_o yet_o nevertheless_o because_o that_o the_o fault_n be_v pardon_v they_o their_o pain_n be_v not_o to_o they_o eternal_a as_o the_o same_o of_o the_o damn_a because_o that_o the_o fault_n of_o damnation_n be_v ta_o ken_v away_o from_o they_o the_o which_o abide_v and_o continue_v upon_o the_o reprobate_n now_o jesus_n christ_n speak_v here_o of_o sin_n which_o damn_v the_o which_o agree_v not_o but_o to_o the_o reprobate_n wherefore_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o fault_n of_o sin_n the_o which_o be_v not_o pardon_v in_o purgatory_n according_a to_o your_o doctrine_n for_o in_o the_o same_o one_o can_v but_o release_v the_o pain_n it_o follow_v then_o that_o although_o that_o we_o do_v agree_v and_o grant_v unto_o you_o that_o there_o be_v some_o forgivensse_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o other_o world_n even_o as_o you_o will_v conclude_v of_o the_o word_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o the_o same_o shall_v nothing_o at_o all_o relieve_v and_o help_v up_o your_o purgatory_n we_o must_v then_o ghost_n consider_v the_o manner_n of_o speak_v by_o the_o which_o jesus_n christ_n will_v declare_v how_o great_a and_o detestable_a that_o sin_n be_v and_o to_o take_v away_o all_o the_o hope_n of_o pardon_n unto_o those_o which_o in_o that_o point_n will_v resist_v the_o truth_n know_v and_o will_v go_v about_o to_o quench_v and_o put_v out_o the_o light_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o they_o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v not_o content_v to_o say_v that_o sin_n shall_v never_o be_v forgive_v and_o pardon_v but_o the_o better_a for_o to_o augment_v and_o amplify_v the_o thing_n he_o will_v use_v that_o manner_n of_o speak_v which_o comprehend_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n the_o which_o already_o every_o man_n feel_v in_o his_o conscience_n in_o this_o life_n and_o that_o latter_a judgement_n which_o shall_v be_v manifest_v in_o the_o resurrection_n wherefore_o he_o say_v brief_o that_o in_o this_o same_o life_n in_o the_o which_o god_n have_v give_v to_o man_n time_n and_o space_n to_o convert_v and_o turn_v himself_o unto_o he_o that_o sin_n shall_v never_o be_v pardon_v and_o yet_o less_o in_o that_o latter_a judgement_n in_o which_o god_n will_v give_v his_o latter_a sentence_n except_o peradventure_o there_o be_v some_o which_o in_o he_o have_v some_o hope_n but_o it_o follow_v not_o thererefore_o that_o he_o have_v forgiveness_n of_o any_o sin_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v which_o shall_v not_o be_v here_o pardon_v but_o to_o the_o end_n that_o thou_o may_v yet_o better_v know_v that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v not_o speak_v in_o that_o sort_n without_o just_a reason_n we_o must_v consider_v that_o he_o furnish_v we_o here_o with_o a_o good_a witness_n against_o the_o originist_n and_o anabapti●●s_n which_o do_v promise_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n crigeniste●_n unto_o the_o devil_n and_o reprobate_a in_o the_o other_o world_n although_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o origines_fw-la be_v of_o such_o a_o opinion_n for_o his_o book_n do_v witness_n unto_o we_o the_o contrary_a but_o for_o to_o return_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o jesus_n christ_n sith_o that_o jesus_n christ_n say_v so_o clear_o that_o that_o sin_n which_o be_v proper_a unto_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v forgiveness_n in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o other_o it_o follow_v then_o that_o it_o shall_v never_o have_v or_o else_o it_o must_v be_v that_o they_o find_v out_o a_o other_o third_o world_n even_o as_o they_o have_v find_v out_o a_o temporal_a eternity_n to_o the_o which_o they_o do_v give_v a_o end_n and_o a_o eternal_a eternity_n fire_n which_o be_v temporal_a not_o perdurable_a but_o although_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v some_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n it_o follow_v not_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o have_v there_o a_o purgatory_n now_o first_o of_o all_o there_o be_v no_o certain_a witness_n that_o there_o be_v any_o remission_n and_o forgiveness_n after_o this_o life_n but_o a_o certain_a human_a conjecture_n and_o presumption_n then_o if_o that_o proposition_n be_v build_v upon_o human_a conjecture_n and_o presumption_n yet_o that_o which_o affirm_v the_o purgatory_n be_v best_a sith_o that_o the_o same_o be_v none_o other_o thing_n but_o a_o conjecture_n and_o presumption_n build_v upon_o other_o conjecture_n and_o presumption_n for_o put_v the_o case_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v forgiveness_n in_o the_o other_o life_n can_v it_o not_o be_v in_o any_o other_o place_n rather_o than_o in_o purgatory_n or_o at_o a_o other_o time_n than_o you_o do_v there_o limit_v can_v it_o not_o have_v be_v give_v either_o by_o and_o by_o after_o that_o one_o be_v dead_a or_o delay_v until_o the_o latter_a judgement_n but_o which_o of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v there_o that_o ever_o have_v expound_v that_o place_n in_o such_o sense_n as_o thou_o take_v it_o chrisostome_n expeund_v it_o after_o this_o 42_o manner_n sith_o that_o that_o sin_n be_v not_o venial_a unto_o you_o you_o shall_v be_v grievous_o punish_v both_o in_o this_o life_n and_o in_o the_o other_o he_o mean_v none_o other_o thing_n by_o those_o word_n but_o that_o the_o jew_n which_o resist_v the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v not_o be_v only_o punish_v in_o this_o world_n for_o to_o be_v chastise_v and_o correct_v 23_o as_o the_o corinthian_n be_v or_o only_o in_o the_o other_o world_n as_o the_o rich_a man_n be_v but_o they_o shall_v be_v here_o and_o there_o as_o those_o of_o sodom_n and_o gomorra_n for_o they_o be_v 24_o destroy_v by_o the_o roman_n and_o have_v not_o escape_v eternal_a damnation_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o this_o exposition_n which_o can_v serve_v you_o those_o which_o be_v of_o a_o opinion_n y_fw-fr the_o s●●les_n do_v abide_v uncertain_a of_o their_o salvation_n or_o damnation_n and_o that_o they_o may_v yet_o profit_v or_o impair_v between_o this_o and_o the_o great_a judgement_n in_o like_a manner_n those_o which_o do_v esteem_n and_o think_v that_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v preach_v unto_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o dead_a to_o which_o it_o have_v not_o be_v here_o declare_v shall_v they_o not_o have_v more_o colour_n here_o to_o build_v their_o reason_n and_o argument_n than_o you_o for_o your_o purgatory_n for_o at_o the_o leastwise_o those_o latter_a here_o shall_v have_v more_o appearance_n accord_v to_o the_o scripture_n because_o that_o they_o may_v or_o can_v allege_v some_o place_n which_o do_v seem_v express_o enough_o to_o favour_v that_o opinion_n and_o yet_o they_o have_v other_o reason_n very_o apparent_a where_o you_o have_v not_o but_o certain_a
christ_n 21●_n mass_n for_o the_o little_a infant_n 259._o mass_n of_o requiem_n for_o the_o saint_n 255_o man_n reason_n the_o foundation_n of_o purgatory_n 222._o man_n that_o be_v dead_a god_n to_o the_o idolater_n 282._o mercury_n 269._o minister_n of_o sacrament_n 241._o monk_n dead_a to_o the_o world_n 274._o mortui_fw-la non_fw-la mordent_fw-la 274._o n._n necessity_n 228._o new_a litany_n 255._o new_a transfiguration_n of_o satan_n 258._o o._n objection_n 2●3_n 222._o 232._o objection_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n 237._o office_n of_o a_o lieutenant_n 27●_n office_n ecclesiastical_a 241._o the_o only_a death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n satisfy_v 220._o one_o only_o god._n 280._o opinion_n of_o lombard_n 227_o p._n pagatory_n 276._o pain_n of_o the_o limb_n 224_o pain_n for_o satisfaction_n 220._o pain_n and_o fault_n 251._o pain_n of_o purgatory_n 224._o pardon_n to_o who_o they_o profit_v 285._o pelagian_n 239._o poena_n damni_fw-la &_o poena_fw-la sensus_fw-la 224._o philip_n king_n of_o france_n 280._o pickelocke_n 286._o place_v of_o purgatory_n 279_o place_n of_o saint_n luke_n ca._n 12._o 287._o place_v of_o the_o act_n ca._n 2._o 289._o place_v of_o saint_n matthew_n ca_fw-mi 12._o decl●●ed_n 271._o place_v of_o the_o apoc._n ca._n 5._o 292._o place_v of_o the_o 1._o corinthian_n ca._n 15._o 290._o place_v of_o the_o philippian_n ca._n 2._o 291._o place_v of_o saint_n peter_n 1._o ca._n 3._o 293._o place_v of_o thoby_n contrary_a to_o the_o priest_n 262_o place_n of_o saint_n matthew_n ca._n 5._o expound_v 267._o place_v of_o the_o second_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n serve_v nothing_o at_o all_o for_o purgatory_n 219._o play_n and_o game_n of_o the_o paynim_n 283_o pope_n god_n and_o more_o than_o god._n 278_o pope_n clement_n the_o six_o cite_v by_o friar_n walter_n be_v dead_a 286._o pope_n lieutenant_n of_o saint_n peter_n 274_o pope_n more_o puissant_a than_o christ_n 252._o pope_n have_v more_o power_n than_o the_o saint_n 278._o pope_n judge_n of_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a 284._o power_n of_o the_o key_n and_o indulgence_n for_o the_o dead_a 274._o power_n of_o the_o key_n 274._o power_n of_o the_o key_n lymit_v in_o this_o world_n 284_o power_n to_o give_v pardon_n lymit_v 285._o power_n of_o the_o dead_a upon_o the_o pope_n 286._o praise_v give_v to_o god_n for_o all_o creature_n 292._o prayer_n for_o the_o resurrection_n 252_o prayer_n for_o the_o saint_n that_o be_v in_o paradise_n 255_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a how_o that_o may_v be_v do_v 253_o prayer_n for_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n 254._o prayer_n of_o the_o devil_n 291._o predication_n to_o the_o dead_a 273._o 293._o 296._o ●he_z priest_n or_o woman_n priest_n 242._o priesthood_n of_o the_o dead_a 276._o prison_n 297._o prisoner_n 29●_n prochet_n archbishop_n of_o genes_n 280._o proposition_n equipolent_n 271._o the_o latter_a prophet_n 217._o proverb_n common_a 211._o 267_o privilege_n 220._o punishment_n upon_o those_o that_o do_v reject_v the_o gospel_n 289._o punishment_n of_o the_o elect_a with_o the_o reproreprobate_n 188._o punishment_n of_o sin_n 222._o purgatory_n the_o nurse_n of_o sin_n 222_o purgatory_n by_o what_o reason_n it_o be_v build_v 219._o purgatory_n before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n 219._o purgatory_n of_o purse_n 276._o purgatory_n for_o the_o body_n 258._o q._n question_v of_o the_o infant_n of_o the_o hebrew_n dead_a without_o circumcision_n 226._o question_v theological_a 230._o r._n rage_n of_o pope_n stephen_n against_o formosus_fw-la 281._o raymond_n 251._o rebellion_n and_o despise_v the_o commandment_n of_o god._n 223_o reconciliation_n fraternal_a 269._o regeneration_n 234._o regula_n 267._o renumeration_n of_o good_a deed_n 222._o reward_v of_o foolish_a bvilder_n 26●_n requ●escant_v in_o pace_n in_o purgatory_n 293._o de_fw-fr roma_fw-it the_o defiler_n of_o the_o faith_n 18●_n s._n sacrifice_n of_o christ_n eternal_a 24●_n salvation_n without_o exterior_a sacrament_n 229._o salvation_n without_o baptism_n 237._o salvation_n ly●●_n to_o the_o element_n 233_o salvation_n without_o visible_a baptism_n 213._o salvation_n by_o piruiledge_n 220._o sara_n and_o agar_n 256._o save_v by_o fire_n 265._o saul_n a_o persecutor_n make_v a_o apostle_n 299._o see_v god_n before_o and_o behind_o 279._o seignory_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 291_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n of_o s._n peter_n 1._o epist._n cap._n 3._o 296._o sense_n of_o s._n mat._n word_n cap._n 5._o 270._o sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o s._n luc._n cap._n 11._o 270._o sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o jesus_n christ_n upon_o the_o 5._o cap_n of_o saint_n mat._n 269._o sense_n of_o the_o parable_n 270._o sentence_n of_o saint_n augustine_n touch_v the_o child_n that_o be_v dead_a without_o baptism_n 238._o sergeant_n of_o purgatory_n 268._o sergius_n and_o formosus_fw-la 281_o shed_v out_o one_o bread_n and_o wine_n upon_o the_o grave_n of_o the_o just_a 262_o sichimite_n 230_o sign_n to_o judge_v the_o true_a and_o false_a prophet_n 258._o sign_n and_o figure_n for_o the_o thing_n sign_v and_o figure_v 240_o silla_n and_o marius_n 281._o syllogism_n 178_o signification_n of_o limb_n 225._o sim●n_n peter_n 276_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 272_o sin_n to_o death_n 256._o sin_n original_a 2●9_n sextus_n 283._o skirmishers_n 257._o solution_n of_o baptism_n 237._o s●●e_z of_o the_o scripture_n &_o of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n touch_v the_o sacramets_n 236_o stella_fw-la clericorum_fw-la 281._o speak_v of_o dumb_a and_o incorporal_a creature_n 292_o spirit_n of_o bacchus_n 213._o spirit_n prisoner_n 295_o spirit_n that_o preach_v to_o the_o dead_a what_o ●●_o it_o be_v 294_o supper_n give_v to_o infant_n by_o cyprian_n and_o origene_n 234._o suburb_n of_o hell_n and_o of_o paradise_n 226._o t._n theology_n inferior_a and_o metaphisical_a 257_o those_o which_o have_v not_o believe_v in_o this_o world_n 298._o three_o sort_n of_o baptism_n 237_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o same_o 284_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n 264._o three_o hell_n 224_o torment_n of_o the_o reprobate_n aggravate_v 247._o transfer_v and_o give_v kingdom_n 280._o true_a gedeon_n 287._o two_o way_n 225_o v._n vainglory_n 257._o valentinian_n 233._o value_v of_o twelve_o thousand_o dram_n 213_o virtue_n of_o jesus_n christ_n come_v to_o the_o dead_a 196._o virtue_n of_o the_o bull_n and_o pardon_n 283_o use_v of_o allegory_n 298._o w._n war_n of_o the_o giant_n 256._o wells_n 297_o well_n of_o saint_n patrick_n 212._o well_n of_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n 293._o what_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n 279_o 298_o who_o do_v bow_v the_o knee_n in_o hell_n 291._o witness_v of_o god._n 218._o witness_v of_o conscience_n that_o he_o be_v a_o god._n 248._o word_n of_o god_n judge_n and_o guide_v 212._o work_n of_o hypocrite_n 223._o worm_n of_o the_o conscience_n 249._o finis_fw-la tabulae_fw-la mieulx_fw-fr vault_n mourir_fw-fr en_fw-fr vertv_n qve_fw-la viure_fw-fr en_fw-fr honcte_fw-la ¶_o imprint_v at_o london_n by_o thomas_n east_n dwell_v by_o paul_n wharf_n 1579._o a_o proverb_n luc._n 16._o l._n 20._o the_o cause_n of_o y_fw-es temptation_n to_o the_o elect_a heb._n 4._o d._n 15._o the_o fall_n of_o peter_n mat._n 26._o g._n 25._o luc_n 22._o l._n 60_o the_o error_n of_o saul_n act._n 7._o 8._o 9_o the_o darkness_n of_o the_o world_n exo._n 10._o l._n 22._o the_o egyptian_n at_o this_o present_a time_n egypt_n and_o babylon_n one_o only_a verity_n the_o mean_n for_o to_o find_v out_o the_o truth_n proverb_n the_o fool_n counsel_v the_o wise_a sape_fw-la etiam_fw-la est_fw-la holitor_fw-la valde_fw-la opportuna_fw-la locutus_fw-la the_o law_n of_o the_o babylonian_n for_o the_o disease_a herodo_n it._n 1._o bxo._n 23._o 〈◊〉_d latin_a book_n all_o language_n good_a to_o god._n luc._n 4._o d._n 23._o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n act_n 2._o 2._o 1._o french_a book_n anacharsis_n amos._n 7._o d._n 13._o david_n isaiah_n the_o apostolical_a eloquence_n and_o human_a ●loqunence_n curious_a man_n of_o speech_n mangler_n of_o latin_a these_o which_o do_v avoid_v the_o read_n of_o dinine_a book_n proverb_n velut_fw-la canis_fw-la nilo_fw-la all_o art_n and_o discipline_n the_o handmaid_n of_o holy_a book_n doctrinal_a of_o alexander_n eloquence_n without_o the_o fear_n of_o god._n cleero_n and_o gariline_n eschines_n and_o demostlienes_n the_o true_a science_n and_o eloquence_n esa._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 3._o john_n 17._o 23_o out_o of_o east_n of_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n curious_a reader_n of_o foolish_a book_n the_o sweet_a smell_n unto_o hog_n vile_a and_o filthy_a book_n fool_n babble_n good_a book_n despise_v &_o forbid_v the_o christian_a all_o to_o all_o man_n 1._o cot._fw-la 9_o c._n 20._o holy_a deceit_n book_n discover_v the_o abuse_n the_o office_n of_o fool_n and_o scoffer_n vile_a and_o 〈◊〉_d be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o idle_a word_n mat._n 12._o
that_o i_o have_v forget_v the_o estate_n in_o which_o i_o have_v be_v and_o that_o i_o be_o unthankful_a towards_o god_n liberality_n and_o goodness_n who_o immediate_o from_o my_o youth_n be_v yet_o at_o the_o school_n have_v draw_v i_o from_o that_o labarinth_n of_o error_n before_o that_o i_o be_v to_o much_o plunge_v in_o that_o babylon_a antechrist_n and_o receive_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n nevertheless_o notwithstanding_o that_o it_o have_v please_v god_n that_o that_o carecter_n and_o mark_n be_v not_o print_v in_o my_o forehead_n to_o the_o which_o yet_o nevertheless_o a._n prepare_v myself_o thinck_v that_o it_o be_v the_o right_a way_n of_o salvation_n if_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o have_v pity_n and_o compassion_n on_o i_o who_o call_v i_o unto_o a_o better_a vocation_n yet_o i_o can_v therefore_o deny_v but_o that_o i_o have_v be_v sufficient_o plunge_v and_o very_o deep_a in_o that_o whore_n of_o babylon_n aswell_o as_o other_o although_o i_o have_v not_o be_v none_o of_o the_o governor_n and_o chief_a eurgess_n and_o citizen_n of_o the_o same_o yet_o i_o have_v be_v of_o the_o mean_a sort_n &_o prepare_v for_o to_o bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o confusion_n as_o the_o other_o do_v and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o that_o by_o nature_n i_o be_v more_o give_v unto_o religion_n the_o which_o yet_o nevertheless_o i_o know_v not_o follow_v in_o steed_n thereof_o all_o superstition_n wherefore_o since_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v take_v i_o out_o i_o can_v not_o yet_o forget_v those_o that_o be_v detain_v and_o keep_v therein_o and_o in_o remember_v and_o consider_v the_o train_n of_o the_o new_a babylon_n it_o make_v i_o so_o remember_v a_o law_n and_o custom_n that_o 1._o the_o ancient_a babylonian_n have_v the_o which_o be_v not_o altogether_o to_o be_v despise_v nor_o unworthy_a to_o be_v remember_v before_o that_o physic_n be_v yet_o bring_v into_o any_o perfect_a aite_n and_o that_o there_o be_v not_o cunning_a physician_n for_o to_o practice_v it_o they_o do_v set_v down_o a_o law_n by_o which_o they_o ordain_v that_o those_o which_o do_v begin_v to_o be_v sick_a and_o disease_a aught_o to_o go_v unto_o those_o which_o sometime_o have_v be_v sick_a with_o the_o same_o disease_n for_o to_o have_v their_o advice_n &_o counsel_n and_o for_o to_o learn_v by_o they_o the_o remedy_n which_o they_o use_v if_o they_o have_v prove_v any_o good_a and_o which_o be_v well_o to_o be_v find_v and_o to_o the_o end_n that_o that_o law_n shall_v be_v the_o better_o keep_v they_o use_v to_o bring_v those_o that_o be_v sick_a and_o disease_a unto_o the_o street_n and_o open_a place_n and_o those_o which_o sometime_o have_v be_v sick_a be_v bind_v by_o the_o law_n to_o visit_v they_o and_o to_o teach_v unto_o every_o one_o of_o they_o the_o remedy_n by_o the_o which_o they_o be_v heal_v if_o then_o the_o babylonian_n be_v so_o careful_a of_o the_o sick_a and_o disease_a let_v we_o think_v what_o reproach_n we_o shall_v have_v of_o god_n if_o after_o that_o he_o have_v make_v we_o feel_v his_o grace_n and_o have_v give_v unto_o we_o the_o remedy_n not_o only_o against_o all_o the_o disease_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n but_o also_o against_o the_o corporal_a and_o spiritual_a death_n we_o have_v no_o pity_n and_o compassion_n on_o our_o brother_n which_o be_v yet_o in_o the_o bed_n of_o death_n and_o if_o we_o do_v not_o show_v unto_o they_o the_o remedy_n that_o we_o have_v learn_v of_o god_o and_o that_o we_o do_v not_o bring_v they_o unto_o the_o high_a and_o sovereign_a physician_n jesus_n christ_n his_o law_n and_o commandment_n aught_o more_o to_o urge_v we_o then_o that_o of_o the_o babylonian_n if_o he_o will_v and_o command_v that_o he_o that_o shall_v find_v the_o ore_n or_o the_o ass_n of_o his_o neighbour_n go_v astray_o yea_o of_o his_o enemy_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o he_o again_o or_o 〈◊〉_d if_o he_o be_v fall_v into_o a_o dyke_n or_o sink_v under_o his_o burden_n to_o help_v he_o out_o and_o up_o again_o do_v we_o think_v that_o he_o have_v not_o yet_o more_o care_n of_o man_n then_o of_o a_o beast_n of_o the_o soul_n more_o than_o of_o the_o body_n do_v he_o not_o give_v we_o sufficient_o to_o understand_v by_o that_o commandment_n in_o what_o recommendation_n we_o ought_v to_o have_v our_o neighbour_n and_o what_o care_n we_o ought_v to_o take_v of_o their_o soul_n and_o health_n sith_o that_o he_o bind_v we_o by_o his_o commandment_n to_o take_v the_o care_n and_o charge_n of_o his_o ass_n i_o then_o consider_v the_o great_a darkness_n abuse_n and_o error_n which_o have_v occupy_v and_o fill_v all_o the_o christianity_n see_v so_o many_o scrupulous_a doubtful_a and_o trouble_a conscience_n and_o so_o many_o disease_n of_o which_o every_o street_n place_n and_o all_o the_o world_n be_v full_a will_v not_o despise_v they_o without_o teach_v they_o some_o remedy_n for_o to_o comfort_v they_o at_o the_o least_o a_o little_a if_o i_o can_v do_v much_o chief_o for_o that_o i_o have_v be_v require_v of_o many_o good_a man_n which_o do_v fear_n god._n it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o one_o shall_v find_v man_n enough_o which_o will_v promise_v remedy_n for_o such_o disease_n but_o he_o shall_v not_o find_v many_o which_o have_v well_o prove_v and_o try_v that_o which_o they_o teach_v unto_o other_o for_o many_o man_n sometime_o will_v meddle_v or_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o heal_v other_o which_o have_v more_o need_n of_o a_o medicine_n than_o those_o unto_o who_o they_o will_v give_v it_o and_o there_o be_v more_o physician_n than_o disease_n and_o although_o i_o will_v not_o glory_n nor_o boast_n myself_o to_o be_v very_o able_a and_o cunning_a in_o that_o matter_n yet_o nevertheless_o i_o will_v not_o hide_v that_o little_a talon_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v unto_o i_o i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a but_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v raise_v up_o in_o these_o our_o day_n learned_a man_n which_o have_v already_o very_o well_o declare_v and_o open_v those_o obscure_a and_o dark_a place_n of_o which_o so_o many_o poor_a conscience_n be_v trouble_v after_o who_o i_o be_o not_o worthy_a to_o carry_v their_o book_n but_o do_v esteem_v it_o a_o great_a benefit_n of_o god_o to_o have_v be_v their_o disciple_n and_o scholar_n and_o by_o their_o mean_n to_o have_v understand_v god_n truth_n although_o that_o many_o book_n have_v be_v already_o make_v and_o set_v forth_o in_o our_o country_n by_o diverse_a learned_a for_o to_o discover_v the_o abuse_n and_o for_o to_o put_v again_o the_o word_n of_o god_o in_o his_o honour_n according_a as_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n institute_v it_o nevertheless_o i_o have_v yet_o think_v that_o my_o little_a labour_n shall_v not_o be_v altogether_o vain_a and_o unprofitable_a towards_o a_o great_a many_o of_o my_o brother_n and_o countryman_n especial_o towards_o some_o for_o many_o cause_n first_o because_o that_o the_o most_o part_n of_o those_o which_o have_v write_v of_o divinity_n have_v heterto_fw-mi write_v in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n the_o which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v book_n of_o all_o man_n and_o especial_o of_o the_o poor_a ignorant_a people_n which_o have_v more_o need_n of_o plain_a doctr●e_n and_o consolation_n wherefore_o it_o be_v good_a that_o such_o matter_n which_o do_v touch_v and_o concern_v our_o health_n and_o salvation_n be_v manifest_v and_o set_v forth_o in_o all_o language_n to_o the_o end_n that_o those_o which_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o one_o may_v be_v instruct_v by_o the_o other_o for_o it_o be_v all_o one_o what_o language_n one_o speak_v unto_o we_o so_o that_o we_o understand_v he_o and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v well_o instruct_v in_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o in_o all_o thing_n god._n necessary_a unto_o our_o salvation_n for_o god_n regard_v not_o the_o language_n but_o only_o the_o thing_n to_o which_o all_o language_n ought_v to_o serve_v then_o even_o as_o those_o who_o do_v write_v in_o a_o language_n which_o be_v most_o common_a to_o every_o nation_n and_o by_o which_o they_o may_v instruct_v and_o teach_v not_o only_o those_o of_o their_o country_n but_o also_o of_o strange_a country_n be_v worthy_a of_o great_a praise_n so_o i_o do_v judge_v they_o worthy_a to_o be_v blame_v and_o not_o worthy_a to_o be_v account_v for_o christian_n man_n to_o occupy_v themselves_o so_o much_o to_o teach_v the_o most_o wise_a and_o best_a learn_v and_o those_o which_o be_v so_o far_o separate_v from_o we_o and_o that_o the_o poor_a ignorant_a and_o those_o of_o the_o house_n shall_v he_o despise_v and_o shall_v feel_v nor_o receive_v any_o fruit_n one_o may_v right_o rebuke_v and_o check_v we_o physician_n heal_v thyself_o and_o that_o we_o do_v not_o
suffer_v yet_o nevertheless_o the_o other_o which_o do_v induce_v but_o to_o dishonour_n and_o blasphemy_n but_o also_o because_o that_o although_o that_o it_o be_v permit_v unto_o many_o to_o read_v they_o yet_o nevertheless_o they_o do_v make_v none_o account_v of_o they_o because_o that_o either_o they_o seem_v unto_o they_o very_o obscure_a and_o so_o weighty_a that_o they_o can_v well_o understand_v they_o or_o the_o time_n to_o long_o and_o take_v no_o pleasure_n to_o read_v book_n which_o have_v not_o some_o merry_a conceit_n and_o delight_n for_o to_o make_v they_o pastime_n for_o they_o be_v yet_o to_o carnal_a and_o find_v no_o pastime_n in_o those_o book_n which_o speak_v but_o of_o god_o and_o of_o the_o health_n of_o the_o soul_n if_o there_o be_v nothing_o for_o the_o flesh_n the_o which_o they_o will_v only_o keep_v there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o malady_n or_o disease_n be_v very_o perilous_a and_o that_o such_o vicious_a and_o corrupt_a nature_n do_v very_o much_o displease_v god_o sith_o that_o they_o have_v so_o little_a reverence_n of_o he_o and_o his_o word_n and_o that_o they_o prefer_v the_o poison_n before_o the_o good_a meat_n nevertheless_o because_o that_o amongst_o such_o one_o may_v yet_o find_v some_o which_o be_v not_o altogether_o perverse_a and_o malicious_a but_o that_o they_o have_v yet_o some_o seed_n of_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o they_o i_o think_v that_o we_o must_v not_o altogether_o despair_n and_o abanoon_n they_o as_o sick_a folk_n that_o be_v incurable_a but_o that_o we_o must_v yet_o prove_v to_o win_v they_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a and_o to_o transfigure_v and_o change_v they_o into_o all_o form_n and_o shape_n for_o to_o induce_v they_o to_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o to_o give_v unto_o they_o some_o taste_n for_o if_o we_o can_v convert_v into_o good_a use_n the_o mean_n by_o the_o which_o the_o devil_n give_v himself_o to_o draw_v away_o man_n from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o rob_v he_o altogether_o and_o hold_v he_o in_o the_o vanity_n of_o this_o world_n and_o may_v use_v they_o as_o a_o bait_n on_o a_o hook_n for_o to_o draw_v they_o from_o such_o vanity_n and_o to_o incitate_v and_o provoke_v they_o to_o the_o study_n of_o the_o truth_n i_o think_v that_o we_o do_v nothing_o unworthy_a of_o the_o office_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n for_o even_o as_o the_o holy_a apostle_n have_v be_v make_v all_o unto_o all_o man_n and_o do_v apply_v and_o give_v himself_o unto_o every_o one_o in_o all_o 20._o that_o which_o be_v possible_a for_o he_o without_o be_v against_o the_o will_n of_o god_n make_v himself_o a_o jew_n unto_o the_o jew_n and_o a_o gentile_a unto_o the_o gentile_n so_o i_o think_v y_fw-mi by_o good_a right_n i_o may_v do_v the_o like_a so_o that_o i_o do_v not_o altogether_o forget_v the_o christian_a modesty_n and_o the_o honour_n and_o reverence_n that_o the_o christian_n owe_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o if_o the_o bawd_n of_o satan_n endeavour_n themselves_o through_o fair_a and_o goodly_a delight_n and_o merry_a conceit_n to_o destroy_v the_o poor_a and_o silly_a soult_n the_o espowse_n of_o jesus_n and_o to_o draw_v they_o away_o from_o he_o for_o to_o make_v they_o serve_v he_o and_o to_o forsake_v their_o master_n shall_v it_o not_o be_v lawful_a for_o we_o to_o use_v a_o other_o practice_n and_o cunning_a for_o to_o let_v they_o for_o to_o discover_v and_o unhide_v their_o filthiness_n for_o to_o make_v they_o appear_v to_o be_v abomination_n to_o all_o the_o world_n and_o to_o retire_v and_o draw_v back_o the_o soul_n from_o his_o stew_n for_o to_o join_v they_o again_o with_o jesus_n christ_n their_o saviour_n if_o a_o paysoner_n do_v cover_v and_o hide_v his_o poison_n with_o some_o delicate_a meat_n for_o to_o poison_v and_o murder_v man_n shall_v it_o not_o be_v by_o more_o just_a reason_n perunt_v to_o a_o phisi●ion_n to_o mingle_v sugar_n and_o honey_n among_o the_o wormwood_n and_o the_o bitter_a aleos_n for_o to_o sweeten_v a_o little_a the_o bitterness_n of_o these_o drink_v which_o notwithstanding_o that_o they_o be_v bitter_a in_o the_o mouth_n be_v yet_o nevertheless_o healthful_a to_o the_o boot_n for_o if_o such_o holy_a deceit_n be_v worthy_a of_o praise_n to_o the_o physician_n deceit_n of_o the_o body_n wherefore_o shall_v it_o be_v despise_v to_o the_o physician_n of_o the_o soul_n i_o will_v to_o god_o that_o he_o have_v give_v unto_o we_o the_o grace_n to_o deceive_v so_o all_o the_o world_n for_o his_o profit_n and_o health_n for_o the_o disease_a be_v happy_a which_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o physician_n to_o his_o health_n and_o heal_a which_o be_v the_o end_n to_o the_o which_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o do_v pretend_v both_o the_o physician_n and_o the_o disease_a i_o know_v abuse_n very_o well_o that_o there_o be_v already_o many_o book_n write_v which_o do_v much_o discover_v abuse_n and_o which_o do_v sufficient_o mock_v the_o vain_a ceremony_n idolatry_n and_o superstition_n which_o be_v among_o the_o christian_n but_o that_o suffice_v not_o except_o one_o do_v teach_v what_o be_v the_o verity_n and_o what_o be_v a_o firm_a and_o sound_a doctrine_n the_o which_o many_o have_v already_o do_v but_o because_o they_o seem_v and_o appear_v too_o severe_a and_o grave_a unto_o those_o with_o who_o we_o have_v chief_o to_o do_v they_o read_v they_o not_o and_o do_v profit_v nothing_o there_o be_v other_o which_o have_v follow_v a_o manner_n to_o write_v altogether_o contrary_a unto_o those_o for_o even_o as_o those_o have_v regard_n to_o none_o other_o thing_n but_o to_o entreat_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n with_o all_o gravity_n modesty_n and_o reverence_n adressinge_v their_o write_n unto_o people_n of_o good_a judgement_n and_o of_o temperate_a sense_n and_o full_a of_o the_o fear_n of_o god_o these_o here_o unto_o the_o contrary_a have_v not_o take_v their_o sight_n but_o to_o the_o white_a and_o mark_n of_o man_n vanity_n and_o curiosity_n and_o have_v purpose_v to_o absteme_a themselves_o from_o all_o weighty_a honest_a and_o holy_a matter_n and_o to_o write_v only_o of_o folly_n merry_a conceit_n jest_n play_n and_o pastime_n as_o of_o fool_n morishdauncer_n scoffer_n and_o jester_n and_o if_o they_o will_v hold_v themselves_o within_o those_o limit_n they_o be_v the_o more_o tolerable_a but_o many_o be_v not_o content_a to_o play_v the_o fool_n scoffer_n amongst_o man_n although_o that_o that_o office_n be_v scant_o meet_v unto_o a_o honest_a man_n do_v yet_o worse_o for_o they_o give_v themselves_o but_o to_o scurrility_n and_o do_v think_v that_o they_o can_v sufficient_o enough_o delight_v man_n except_o their_o device_n be_v altogether_o full_a of_o ruffenly_a talk_n and_o bawdry_n of_o villainy_n 〈◊〉_d and_o blasphemy_n not_o only_o intolerable_a to_o the_o christian_n but_o which_o shall_v be_v judge_v worthy_a of_o grievous_a punishment_n amongst_o the_o jew_n turk_n paynim_n and_o infidel_n for_o if_o the_o gentile_n and_o paynim_n have_v not_o take_v and_o account_v for_o honest_a man_n and_o worthy_a to_o be_v advance_v into_o any_o honourable_a office_n in_o a_o common_a wealth_n the_o morishdauncer_n masker_n juggler_n player_n mummer_n and_o jester_n what_o honour_n be_v that_o unto_o prince_n and_o unto_o christian_a people_n to_o take_v delight_n not_o only_o in_o such_o man_n with_o their_o book_n but_o in_o other_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o detestable_a and_o more_o rude_a in_o all_o filthy_a and_o vile_a word_n as_o the_o ruffian_n of_o the_o stew_n and_o denier_n of_o god_n do_v we_o think_v that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v say_v 35._o without_o a_o cause_n that_o for_o every_o idle_a word_n that_o man_n shall_v speak_v they_o must_v render_v account_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n sith_o that_o the_o truth_n which_o lie_v not_o tell_v we_o the_o same_o so_o clear_o and_o do_v menace_n and_o threaten_v that_o we_o must_v render_v a_o account_n for_o every_o idle_a word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v which_o be_v vain_a and_o unprofitable_a which_o serve_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_o nor_o to_o any_o edify_n of_o our_o neighbour_n do_v we_o think_v that_o our_o ribald_a and_o bawdy_a talk_n backebiting_n evil_a speak_n unadvised_a slanderous_a and_o infamous_a word_n which_o do_v serve_v to_o none_o other_o end_n but_o to_o pervert_v the_o understanding_n of_o man_n to_o add_v or_o heap_v evil_a upon_o evil_a to_o cast_v oil_n into_o the_o fire_n and_o to_o bring_v towe_fw-mi the_o better_a to_o inflame_v man_n conscience_n unto_o all_o wickedness_n and_o abomination_n and_o unto_o the_o which_o it_o be_v already_o too_o much_o incline_v do_v we_o think_v that_o such_o language_n shall_v not_o come_v to_o a_o account_n and_o that_o
we_o see_v it_o by_o experience_n in_o young_a child_n merchant_n gentleman_n damoisel_n and_o courtier_n who_o after_o that_o they_o have_v taste_v of_o such_o book_n be_v clean_o out_o of_o taste_n &_o can_v away_o with_o all_o other_o which_o be_v not_o like_a unto_o they_o wherefore_o i_o will_v glad_o counsel_v such_o man_n of_o so_o good_a a_o mind_n and_o spirit_n which_o give_v themselves_o to_o make_v such_o book_n and_o i_o desire_v and_o pray_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o so_o much_o as_o they_o love_v his_o honour_n and_o they_o to_o apply_v that_o goodly_a wit_n and_o understanding_n which_o god_o have_v give_v unto_o they_o and_o that_o rhetoric_n and_o gift_n of_o eloquence_n wherewith_o they_o be_v endue_v into_o some_o better_a study_n &_o matter_n more_o profitable_a to_o the_o end_n they_o be_v not_o rebuke_v and_o blame_v to_o have_v abuse_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n against_o his_o honour_n and_o glory_n for_o that_o cause_n i_o have_v purpose_v to_o write_v after_o a_o sort_n which_o peradventure_o will_v seem_v very_o evil_o to_o agree_v with_o a_o theologian_n to_o wit_n unto_o one_o which_o will_v speak_v of_o divine_a letter_n but_o i_o think_v that_o when_o man_n shall_v understand_v my_o reason_n they_o will_v take_v my_o advice_n and_o deliberation_n in_o good_a part_n and_o i_o will_v leave_v unto_o none_o any_o just_a occasion_n to_o accuse_v and_o rebuke_v i_o in_o that_o i_o rebuke_v other_o except_o that_o man_n love_v rather_o to_o serve_v to_o their_o affection_n and_o to_o use_v slander_n then_o to_o judge_v of_o thing_n accord_v to_o truth_n and_o equity_n i_o have_v already_o touch_v some_o reason_n which_o have_v induce_v i_o to_o do_v that_o beside_o yet_o i_o will_v add_v too_o many_o other_o the_o first_o be_v that_o i_o will_v assay_v to_o make_v those_o learn_fw-mi by_o my_o example_n which_o have_v a_o better_a wit_n than_o i_o to_o do_v that_o which_o i_o myself_o can_v the_o which_o thing_n ought_v not_o to_o seem_v to_o strange_a for_o a_o whetstone_n &_o a_o wheel_n do_v sharpen_v well_o the_o iron_n and_o make_v it_o to_o cut_v and_o yet_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v not_o sharp_a nor_o cut_v of_o itself_o and_o at_o the_o least_o wise_a i_o endeavour_v myself_o to_o show_v unto_o those_o good_a wit_n and_o spirit_n which_o delight_v themselves_o in_o pleasant_a thing_n and_o which_o occupy_v themselves_o to_o such_o vanity_n and_o matter_n in_o the_o which_o they_o may_v exercise_v their_o understanding_n and_o eloquence_n more_o to_o their_o honour_n before_o god_o and_o good_a people_n and_o to_o more_o great_a profit_n than_o they_o do_v if_o they_o will_v not_o apply_v themselves_o unto_o matter_n to_o high_a and_o weighty_a as_o many_o have_v do_v as_o well_o among_o the_o old_a as_o the_o new_a and_o if_o i_o myself_o can_v do_v that_o which_o i_o will_v teach_v unto_o other_o at_o the_o jest_n wise_a i_o will_v serve_v they_o in_o steed_n of_o a_o pattern_n wherein_o they_o may_v find_v some_o thing_n for_o to_o follow_v or_o at_o the_o jest_n wise_a the_o fault_n y_fw-es they_o shall_v find_v in_o my_o manner_n of_o proceed_v will_v admonish_v they_o of_o the_o vice_n that_o they_o ought_v to_o avoid_v in_o their_o write_n the_o which_o if_o they_o find_v in_o my_o stile_n or_o in_o my_o invention_n or_o disposition_n i_o be_o sure_a that_o they_o shall_v not_o find_v in_o the_o sentence_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o matter_n any_o thing_n unworthy_a for_o a_o christian_a man_n for_o whatsoever_o thing_n that_o it_o be_v i_o believe_v that_o one_o shall_v find_v nothing_o which_o may_v induce_v to_o heresy_n except_o those_o who_o of_o themselves_o do_v pretend_v thereunto_o and_o who_o as_o the_o spider_n do_v draw_v the_o venom_n from_o all_o place_n and_o heresy_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o to_o keep_v we_o from_o all_o heresy_n although_o that_o i_o do_v glory_n mock_v and_o jest_n at_o the_o abuse_n error_n heresy_n superstition_n and_o idolatrye_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antichrist_n yet_o nevertheless_o whosoever_o shall_v well_o mark_v and_o consider_v the_o matter_n and_o shall_v have_v patience_n to_o read_v all_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o sentence_n and_o of_o the_o argument_n unto_o the_o end_n except_o he_o be_v of_o a_o perverse_a judgement_n shall_v be_v constrain_v and_o compel_v to_o acknowledge_v and_o confess_v that_o i_o do_v not_o mock_v or_o scorn_v of_o thing_n which_o be_v worthy_a not_o only_o of_o mockery_n but_o also_o of_o hatred_n and_o abomination_n of_o all_o mankind_n and_o that_o i_o do_v not_o only_o uncover_v the_o abuse_n without_o show_v by_o and_o by_o the_o true_a use_n of_o y_fw-es thing_n nor_o i_o do_v not_o condemn_v the_o error_n and_o the_o lie_n without_o show_v the_o truth_n that_o we_o must_v follow_v and_o wherein_o the_o faithful_a aught_o to_o stay_v themselves_o and_o i_o do_v not_o manifest_a antechrist_n for_o to_o avoid_v and_o to_o flee_v from_o he_o without_o show_v jesus_n christ_n for_o to_o follow_v he_o wherefore_o i_o think_v that_o those_o which_o have_v their_o ear_n so_o delicate_a and_o can_v only_o abide_v one_o little_a word_n ear_n against_o the_o idolatry_n superstition_n &_o the_o great_a abuse_n which_o lead_v all_o the_o world_n into_o ruin_n be_v not_o rightful_a judge_n but_o of_o a_o corrupt_a and_o perverse_a judgement_n for_o what_o judgement_n be_v this_o to_o hear_v and_o see_v the_o name_n of_o god_n the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v blaspheme_v daily_o so_o horrible_o and_o not_o to_o speak_v a_o word_n and_o to_o be_v such_o a_o unjust_a and_o sharp_a rebuker_n and_o severe_a judge_n against_o those_o who_o only_o in_o scoff_v and_o jest_v will_v admonish_v &_o rebuke_v such_o blasphemer_n they_o do_v willing_o suffer_v that_o such_o man_n do_v mock_v god_n open_o that_o they_o do_v blaspheme_v he_o without_o any_o shame_n that_o they_o do_v turn_v upside_o down_o honour_n all_o religion_n &_o the_o truth_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o they_o make_v frustrate_a and_o of_o none_o effect_v the_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n that_o they_o do_v eat_v up_o and_o devour_v his_o poor_a sheep_n before_o their_o eye_n that_o they_o do_v lead_v the_o poor_a soul_n unto_o perdition_n &_o eternal_a damnation_n &_o do_v hold_v all_o the_o world_n in_o error_n &_o idolatry_n for_o to_o destroy_v they_o altogether_o and_o can_v we_o suffer_v that_o unto_o such_o mocker_n &_o blasphemer_n of_o god_n and_o of_o man_n one_o shall_v only_o give_v a_o little_a holy_a water_n of_o the_o court_n and_o that_o one_o shall_v sprinkle_v they_o with_o the_o least_o thing_n of_o y_fw-es world_n only_o with_o some_o little_a word_n or_o say_n or_o with_o some_o pleasant_a word_n the_o which_o can_v hurt_v no_o man_n and_o which_o be_v no_o dishonour_n unto_o god_n but_o serve_v to_o discover_v the_o abuse_n and_o to_o bring_v the_o mouth_n of_o y●_n faithful_a out_o of_o fast_o with_o the_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n and_o to_o manifest_v unto_o they_o the_o seducer_n for_o the_o health_n of_o their_o soul_n i_o dóe_v great_o marvel_v of_o those_o great_a lover_n of_o the_o honour_n of_o hypocrite_n seduser_n false_a prophet_n ravisher_n &_o devourer_n of_o the_o poor_a widow_n and_o fatherless_a mocker_n contemner_n &_o blasphemer_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o have_v so_o little_a down_o regard_n or_o care_n of_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n &_o of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n who_o they_o see_v daily_o to_o be_v crucify_v before_o their_o eye_n and_o to_o be_v spurn_v and_o tread_v underfoot_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o testament_n and_o covenant_n and_o yet_o dare_v not_o speak_v a_o word_n but_o which_o be_v worse_o they_o will_v not_o yet_o suffer_v that_o other_o unto_o who_o god_n have_v give_v the_o mean_n and_o boldneess_n shall_v speak_v and_o rebuke_v such_o abuse_n and_o sacrilege_n importable_a to_o all_o good_a christian_a heart_n i_o think_v that_o such_o people_n have_v no_o just_a occasion_n to_o condemn_v we_o in_o that_o behalf_n for_o if_o they_o be_v too_o wise_a and_o do_v think_v that_o such_o thing_n wise_a agree_v not_o with_o the_o gravity_n of_o their_o person_n then_o let_v they_o leave_v they_o to_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o fool_n sith_o that_o as_o man_n do_v fool_n say_v they_o have_v the_o privilege_n to_o speak_v all_o thing_n for_o as_o for_o my_o part_n i_o will_v be_v very_o well_o content_v that_o god_n will_v give_v i_o the_o grace_n that_o i_o may_v say_v unto_o they_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v unto_o the_o corinthian_n you_o be_v wise_a and_o 10._o we_o be_v fool_n for_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n if_o
their_o school_n and_o unto_o a_o more_o high_a philosophy_n if_o they_o think_v that_o we_o must_v entreat_v of_o such_o matter_n with_o more_o great_a gravity_n &_o modesty_n i_o deny_v not_o that_o we_o can_v entreat_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n with_o to_o great_a honour_n and_o reverence_n but_o i_o will_v that_o they_o have_v aswell_o the_o consideration_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o so_o severe_a but_o you_o it_o have_v his_o merry_a conceit_n sport_n honest_a game_n merry_a jest_n &_o word_n covenable_a &_o most_o agree_v scrip._n to_o his_o grace_n &_o majesty_n and_o he_o y_fw-fr will_v try_v &_o prove_v it_o let_v he_o consider_v how_o god_o himself_o and_o jesus_n christ_n that_o great_a celestial_a orator_n do_v speak_v sometime_o either_o in_o rebuke_v his_o disciple_n or_o the_o hypocrite_n and_o reprobate_a and_o among_o those_o which_o the_o lord_n do_v speak_v without_o heap_v together_o a_o great_a many_o of_o example_n that_o they_o will_v only_o mark_v and_o behold_v what_o answer_n joas_n the_o father_n of_o gedeon_n do_v 31._o make_v unto_o the_o burgess_n and_o citizen_n of_o the_o town_n who_o 31_o complain_v to_o he_o of_o his_o son_n which_o have_v pull_v down_o and_o destroy_v the_o idol_n of_o baal_n and_o his_o altar_n and_o the_o word_n that_o ely_n have_v with_o the_o prophet_n of_o baal_n what_o 13._o mock_v do_v he_o give_v they_o and_o fsay_v in_o like_a manner_n against_o the_o babylonian_n and_o their_o idol_n who_o yet_o nevertheless_o be_v both_o of_o they_o grave_n &_o very_a severe_a prophet_n and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n and_o in_o baruch_n and_o in_o the_o 36._o epistle_n attribute_v unto_o jeremy_n i_o will_v leave_v off_o to_o allege_v the_o example_n of_o so_o many_o good_a ancient_a doctor_n who_o in_o their_o book_n and_o by_o their_o write_n have_v so_o much_o jest_v and_o mock_v at_o the_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n of_o the_o pan●ns_n which_o have_v more_o great_a reason_n and_o appearance_n than_o those_o against_o who_o we_o do_v at_o this_o time_n fight_v he_o that_o will_v not_o believe_v i_o let_v he_o read_v their_o work_n chief_o of_o tertulian_n eusebius_n lactantius_n augustine_n hierome_n and_o other_o like_a upon_o all_o those_o that_o they_o have_v write_v against_o the_o pan●ns_n and_o heretic_n wherefore_o then_o shall_v not_o that_o be_v permit_v we_o in_o dialogue_n which_o we_o rebuke_v not_o in_o those_o great_a man_n when_o they_o have_v speak_v it_o in_o their_o own_o person_n the_o which_o require_v more_o gravity_n then_o if_o they_o do_v bring_v in_o other_o man_n speak_v and_o dispute_v together_o as_o i_o do_v in_o my_o dialogue_n &_o disputation_n for_o there_o be_v none_o of_o a_o good_a dialogue_n judgement_n but_o that_o he_o understand_v very_o well_o that_o in_o the_o phrase_n of_o write_v there_o be_v no_o great_a liberty_n and_o licence_n in_o poetry_n than_o dialogue_n and_o talk_v for_o they_o must_v bring_v in_o the_o person_n speak_v according_a to_o he_o who_o they_o represent_v who_o oftentimes_o do_v speak_v more_o after_o their_o sense_n and_o of_o the_o person_n who_o they_o do_v jest_n at_o then_o according_a or_o after_o the_o same_o of_o the_o author_n although_o that_o the_o author_n have_v willing_o use_v to_o choose_v some_o one_o by_o who_o he_o give_v to_o understand_v what_o be_v his_o opinion_n and_o the_o best_a sentence_n therefore_o i_o have_v bring_v in_o four_o man_n of_o diverse_a qualitis_n dialogue_n and_o opinion_n and_o do_v make_v they_o to_o speak_v according_a to_o the_o matter_n which_o be_v talk_v off_o at_o this_o day_n among_o man_n and_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n and_o affection_n of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o i_o have_v bring_v in_o one_o as_o a_o man_n very_o devout_a and_o sear_a god_n which_o nevertheless_o be_v yet_o altogether_o wrap_v in_o superstition_n and_o error_n and_o maintain_v man_n tradition_n but_o not_o wilful_o i_o have_v bring_v in_o a_o other_o which_o be_v not_o yet_o full_o assure_v and_o set_v down_o neither_o on_o the_o one_o side_n nor_o on_o the_o other_o but_o be_v trouble_v in_o his_o conscience_n and_o know_v not_o very_o well_o who_o to_o believe_v but_o run_v on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o ●n_v the_o other_o and_o yet_o nevertheless_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o he_o enquire_v and_o know_v already_o many_o abuse_n wherefore_o he_o speak_v a_o little_a more_o joyful_o and_o care_v not_o so_o much_o for_o man_n tradition_n and_o be_v not_o so_o affection_a after_o they_o nor_o so_o severe_a as_o the_o first_o who_o be_v yet_o altogether_o root_v in_o these_o old_a superstition_n afterward_o come_v one_o who_o represent_v the_o person_n of_o a_o grave_n &_o honest_a man_n &_o skilful_a in_o you_o heavenly_a and_o human_a letter_n which_o speak_v daily_o with_o great_a honour_n and_o reverence_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o absolve_v the_o question_n and_o matter_n allege_v of_o the_o one_o side_n and_o of_o the_o other_o according_a to_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a doctor_n and_o for_o the_o four_o there_o be_v one_o which_o be_v a_o little_a more_o talkative_a than_o this_o and_o a_o little_a more_o give_v to_o speak_v free_o against_o the_o abuse_n but_o he_o do_v it_o with_o more_o great_a modesty_n &_o honesty_n than_o the_o caphards_n do_v speak_v against_o the_o minister_n and_o lover_n of_o the_o truth_n i_o do_v say_v this_o man_n to_o have_v more_o skill_n or_o knowledge_n in_o human_a letter_n then_o the_o other_o and_o which_o speak_v willing_o and_o joyful_o but_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o he_o play_v in_o earnest_n and_o say_v nothing_o but_o to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o antechrist_n for_o to_o magnify_v jesus_n christ_n &_o that_o he_o be_v content_a to_o be_v correct_v by_o his_o companion_n if_o any_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v blame_v wherefore_o if_o any_o man_n will_v saeme_v to_o cavil_n because_o it_o seem_v unto_o he_o some_o time_n that_o this_o man_n play_v the_o part_n divine_a of_o a_o mocker_n and_o that_o he_o mingle_v the_o human_a letter_n history_n and_o poetrye_n with_o the_o divine_a let_v he_o consider_v the_o person_n who_o he_o representet●_n &_o that_o he_o do_v not_o speak_v any_o thing_n so_o absurd_a nor_o so_o strange_a but_o that_o it_o serve_v to_o the_o present_a matter_n and_o let_v he_o not_o veer_v himself_o any_o more_o furthermore_o if_o saint_n paul_n by_o occasion_n have_v sometime_o 12._o allege_v the_o witness_n of_o the_o panun_n yea_o of_o poet_n for_o to_o serve_v to_o his_o matter_n and_o if_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o who_o i_o have_v already_o speak_v off_o have_v yet_o do_v more_o and_o their_o book_n have_v serve_v they_o so_o well_o for_o to_o confound_v they_o themselves_o and_o to_o vanquish_v they_o of_o their_o error_n and_o to_o show_v unto_o they_o more_o clear_o the_o truth_n &_o virtue_n of_o our_o religion_n insomuch_o that_o julian_n the_o apostate_n in_o 17._o spite_n of_o his_o beard_n be_v constrain_v to_o forbid_v the_o christian_n to_o read_v they_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o think_v it_o strange_a if_o i_o do_v follow_v their_o example_n in_o like_a thing_n chief_o when_o i_o will_v show_v plain_o and_o open_o before_o all_o man_n eye_n how_o the_o superstition_n and_o idolatrye_n of_o the_o christian_n be_v take_v from_o the_o paynim_n and_o idolater_n and_o altogether_o like_a or_o worse_o i_o do_v not_o allege_v they_o for_o that_o god_n truth_n be_v not_o sufficient_a of_o itself_o to_o allow_v and_o maintain_v itself_o but_o for_o to_o make_v all_o thing_n to_o serve_v he_o and_o for_o to_o make_v the_o light_n the_o better_a to_o be_v know_v from_o darkness_n the_o truth_n from_o lie_v and_o the_o better_a to_o vanquish_v and_o overcome_v the_o shamelessé_fw-fr seducer_n who_o will_v yet_o hide_v and_o cover_v their_o heresy_n and_o abomination_n if_o one_o do_v not_o show_v they_o forth_o with_o the_o finger_n and_o except_o one_o do_v take_v they_o as_o the_o thief_n upon_o his_o theft_n and_o robbery_n and_o the_o shameless_a whore_n with_o her_o whoredom_n and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o yet_o which_o will_v not_o be_v content_v with_o those_o reason_n i_o will_v show_v unto_o he_o such_o a_o excuse_n and_o defence_n as_o mantuan_n do_v make_v for_o himself_o in_o a_o matter_n almost_o like_a say_v think_v not_o that_o i_o be_o to_o be_v rebuke_v because_o that_o 23_o i_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o heathen_a man_n for_o saint_n augustine_n which_o be_v one_o of_o our_o doctor_n say_v if_o the_o philosopher_n have_v say_v any_o thing_n confirmable_a unto_o our_o faith_n we_o must_v not_o avoid_v they_o nor_o fear_v they_o but_o
this_o present_n do_v unto_o we_o we_o have_v good_a occasion_n to_o render_v unto_o he_o thank_n do_v you_o think_v that_o that_o book_n wherein_o be_v describe_v the_o voyage_n of_o saint_n patrick_n and_o such_o other_o like_a full_a of_o fable_n most_o sottish_a and_o brutish_a be_v meet_v to_o give_v any_o good_a doctrine_n unto_o child_n and_o that_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v not_o be_v a_o better_a for_o they_o to_o have_v in_o their_o hand_n true_o we_o be_v in_o a_o good_a way_n forasmuch_o as_o we_o be_v already_o come_v unto_o saint_n patrick_n thomas_n you_o know_v that_o this_o cave_n be_v in_o ireland_n hillatius_n some_o place_n it_o in_o ireland_n and_o other_o in_o scotland_n it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o i_o wheresoever_o it_o be_v for_o i_o will_v make_v no_o voyage_n thither_o thomas_n it_o be_v all_o one_o also_o to_o i_o for_o those_o country_n be_v not_o far_o mell_o distant_a the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o i_o so_o that_o i_o may_v find_v it_o for_o that_o cause_n i_o have_v determine_v to_o go_v thither_o out_o of_o hand_n but_o since_o i_o hear_v our_o ghostly_a father_n i_o will_v not_o go_v before_o i_o have_v first_o speak_v with_o he_o and_o after_o i_o will_v rule_v myself_o according_a to_o the_o counsel_n that_o he_o will_v give_v i_o hillarius_n you_o do_v either_o mock_v or_o dream_n thomas_n that_o be_v no_o country_n whereof_o we_o shall_v mock_v forasmuch_o as_o all_o those_o that_o have_v be_v there_o have_v lose_v their_o laugh_n and_o all_o rejoice_n hillarius_n it_o be_v then_o like_a unto_o the_o den_n of_o throphonius_fw-la which_o be_v in_o the_o country_n of_o lebadia_n of_o which_o the_o ancient_a laughter_n writer_n have_v write_v almost_o all_o after_o the_o same_o sort_n as_o our_o dreamer_n have_v do_v of_o saint_n patrick_n hole_n or_o cave_n and_o doubt_v not_o but_o a'n_z the_o one_o fable_n have_v engender_v y_fw-mi other_o nevertheless_o 7._o i_o do_v not_o yet_o think_v that_o you_o speak_v in_o earnest_n thomas_n you_o think_v that_o i_o be_o such_o a_o mocker_n as_o you_o be_v hillarius_n if_o you_o be_v not_o a_o mocker_n you_o be_v then_o a_o dreamer_n thomas_n i_o sleep_v not_o whereby_o i_o shall_v dream_v hillarius_n no_o more_o also_o do_v our_o ghostly_a preacher_n sleep_n to_o day_n i_o never_o in_o all_o my_o life_n hear_v such_o a_o old_a dreamer_n dream_n and_o take_v on_o in_o such_o sort_n i_o believe_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o that_o he_o have_v study_v in_o the_o school_n of_o some_o old_a dote_a witch_n full_a of_o lie_n from_o which_o he_o bring_v this_o divinity_n eusebius_n be_v you_o not_o ashamed_a so_o to_o mock_v &_o speak_v against_o such_o a_o virtuous_a and_o learned_a man_n as_o he_o be_v hillarius_n i_o know_v not_o what_o knowledge_n and_o learning_n he_o may_v have_v but_o this_o i_o may_v sure_o say_v that_o i_o never_o hear_v any_o thing_n of_o he_o whereby_o i_o may_v know_v that_o there_o be_v either_o knowledge_n or_o wisdom_n in_o he_o if_o he_o have_v study_v in_o humaino_n letter_n i_o shall_v have_v think_v that_o he_o have_v read_v that_o he_o preach_v either_o in_o the_o poetry_n or_o verse_n of_o homer_n or_o virgil_n or_o of_o socra_n some_o other_o poet_n as_o well_o greek_a as_o latin_a or_o in_o plutarch_n for_o i_o be_o sure_a y_fw-mi in_o those_o theology_n a_o man_n shall_v find_v that_o matter_n altogether_o entreat_v off_o almost_o after_o that_o sort_n as_o he_o have_v declare_v unto_o we_o and_o chief_o in_o plutarch_n who_o declare_v timarchus_n most_o marvellous_a thing_n that_o timarchus_n have_v see_v in_o the_o den_n of_o trophonius_n which_o differ_v but_o a_o little_a from_o those_o which_o we_o have_v hear_v of_o our_o ghostly_a father_n but_o i_o great_o fear_v that_o he_o never_o profit_v so_o much_o in_o greek_a neither_o in_o latin_a that_o he_o can_v ever_o have_v read_v those_o author_n nor_o that_o he_o can_v have_v dnderstoode_v they_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v read_v they_o but_o for_o to_o speak_v as_o i_o think_v i_o rather_o be_v believe_v that_o he_o have_v read_v it_o either_o in_o the_o sepheardes_n calendar_n or_o in_o dante_n be_v what_o age_n be_v he_o off_o thomas_n wherefore_o do_v you_o demand_v his_o age_n hillarius_n because_o that_o if_o he_o have_v live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o alcestis_n and_o protesilaus_n either_o in_o the_o time_n of_o hercules_n and_o theseus_n or_o in_o the_o time_n of_o ulysses_n and_o aeneas_n who_o the_o poet_n do_v witness_n &_o affirm_v to_o have_v be_v in_o hell_n and_o that_o they_o have_v visit_v all_o those_o country_n and_o chamber_n as_o well_o the_o limbus_n patrum_fw-la as_o purgatory_n and_o also_o those_o goodly_a and_o pleasant_a field_n elisea_n we_o may_v presume_v and_o think_v that_o he_o have_v speak_v unto_o they_o and_o have_v learn_v of_o they_o that_o theology_n but_o he_o must_v be_v then_o at_o the_o least_o more_o than_o a_o thousand_o and_o nine_o hundred_o year_n old_a and_o that_o he_o must_v poet_n be_v twice_o so_o old_a as_o mathusala_n thomas_n have_v we_o not_o lazarus_n who_o jesus_n christ_n raise_v to_o life_n who_o have_v be_v long_o time_n after_o all_o those_o who_o can_v tell_v what_o there_o be_v for_o thou_o can_v not_o say_v that_o the_o same_o be_v a_o fable_n as_o the_o other_o be_v hillarius_n yet_o the_o ghostly_a father_n can_v not_o have_v speak_v unto_o he_o except_o he_o be_v at_o the_o least_o more_o than_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n old_a i_o do_v not_o deny_v his_o resurrection_n but_o i_o do_v deny_v all_o those_o lie_n which_o be_v add_v unto_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n thomas_n can_v he_o not_o very_o well_o have_v hear_v it_o of_o those_o who_o through_o long_a succession_n have_v learned_a and_o understand_v it_o of_o those_o who_o have_v hear_v it_o of_o lazarus_n hillarius_n here_o be_v a_o great_a many_o of_o héeresay_n i_o will_v glad_o know_v who_o be_v the_o first_o unto_o who_o lazarus_n declare_v it_o and_o whether_o lazarus_n have_v speak_v more_o ample_o than_o jesus_n christ_n and_o all_o his_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n do_v we_o not_o plain_o see_v how_o we_o do_v jest_n with_o god_n tourn_v his_o work_v and_o miracle_n into_o fable_n and_o poet_n invention_n can_v the_o enemy_n of_o our_o religion_n do_v more_o do_v not_o these_o old_a dreamer_n who_o have_v dream_v and_o invent_v out_o such_o fable_n make_v of_o lazarus_n a_o other_o alcestis_n theseus_n ulysses_n or_o aeneas_n who_o be_v come_v from_o hell_n for_o to_o declare_v what_o be_v do_v there_o to_o what_o other_o end_n do_v all_o th●s●_n invention_n and_o fabulous_a narration_n of_o old_a fool_n serve_v but_o for_o to_o call_v into_o doubt_n god_n truth_n and_o for_o to_o give_v occasion_n unto_o the_o mocker_n and_o contemner_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o word_n to_o laugh_v and_o make_v a_o scoff_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o pythagoras_n lucretia_n lucian_n and_o many_o other_o have_v scoff_v at_o the_o 15_o fable_n and_o invention_n of_o the_o poet_n touch_v their_o hell_n and_o of_o the_o vain_a credulity_n and_o great_a foolishness_n of_o the_o ignorant_a people_n who_o give_v credit_n unto_o they_o as_o we_o have_v do_v to_o the_o dream_n of_o those_o caphards_n and_o ●oltes_n who_o will_v make_v so_o many_o part_n of_o the_o infernal_a region_n as_o the_o cosmographer_n have_v make_v of_o the_o earth_n for_o as_o they_o have_v divide_v cosmography_n it_o into_o asia_n africa_n and_o europa_n even_o so_o have_v those_o divide_v the_o infernal_a habitation_n into_o the_o limbus_n patrum_fw-la purgatory_n &_o the_o hell_n of_o the_o damn_a and_o have_v make_v all_o those_o country_n inhabit_v and_o so_o full_a of_o people_n that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o little_a corner_n nor_o angle_n but_o that_o all_o be_v full_a chief_o in_o purgatory_n if_o we_o will_v believe_v our_o priest_n and_o monk_n for_o the_o soul_n go_v thither_o daily_o by_o thousand_o theophilus_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n raise_v not_o lazarus_n nor_o the_o other_o who_o he_o have_v call_v from_o death_n to_o life_n for_o to_o hold_v &_o keep_v man_n by_o such_o mockery_n and_o for_o to_o make_v the_o word_n of_o god_o like_v unto_o the_o work_n of_o poet_n for_o his_o simplicity_n gravity_n nor_o yet_o his_o majesty_n can_v bear_v and_o suffer_v it_o it_o suffice_v he_o to_o teach_v hell._n we_o that_o there_o be_v a_o hell_n and_o we_o ought_v to_o content_n ourselves_o therewith_o without_o inquire_v where_o it_o be_v nor_o what_o it_o be_v for_o those_o who_o through_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v there_o condemn_v shall_v know_v it_o by_o prove_v
be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o to_o defend_v they_o against_o the_o devil_n &_o to_o drive_v he_o away_o for_o these_o be_v the_o true_a weapon_n which_o the_o devil_n fear_v and_o which_o s._n paul_n give_v to_o the_o christian_a knight_n hillarius_n if_o that_o little_a child_n or_o any_o old_a dreamer_n and_o fool_n have_v hold_v the_o opinion_n one_o can_v not_o but_o laugh_v but_o be_v it_o not_o great_a shame_n that_o such_o man_n who_o will_v be_v esteem_v and_o count_v the_o pillar_n of_o the_o faith_n will_v forge_v and_o invent_v such_o a_o theology_n but_o have_v they_o not_o good_a leisure_n to_o baptize_v the_o bell_n be_v bell_n not_o that_o to_o mock_v and_o scoff_n with_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o baptism_n to_o baptize_v brass_n and_o insensible_a metal_n the_o adventurer_n or_o vagabond_n which_o baptize_v a_o calf_n and_o call_v he_o a_o pike_n for_o to_o eat_v he_o in_o lente_n in_o steed_n of_o a_o fish_n have_v not_o they_o more_o cause_n to_o do_v for_o i_o do_v judge_v that_o they_o think_v that_o one_o can_v drive_v away_o the_o dyvelle_n as_o they_o do_v the_o bird_n from_o the_o vane_n if_o the_o dyvelle_n be_v like_a unto_o the_o bee_n they_o will_v stay_v they_o rather_o and_o i_o do_v fear_n that_o it_o happen_v so_o well_o unto_o they_o for_o as_o far_o as_o we_o can_v perceive_v by_o their_o work_n there_o be_v not_o a_o people_n that_o have_v so_o many_o dyvelle_n about_o they_o but_o you_o have_v let_v camp_n out_o the_o best_a that_o be_v they_o say_v that_o at_o the_o solemn_a feast_n we_o must_v ring_n much_o and_o a_o long_a time_n for_o to_o awaken_v the_o drunkard_n and_o those_o that_o sleep_n but_o will_v you_o have_v i_o tell_v you_o the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o bell_n their_o bell_n consider_v the_o form_n &_o fashion_n of_o a_o bell._n it_o have_v a_o little_a head_n but_o it_o have_v the_o great_a belly_n wherefore_o i_o can_v understand_v according_a to_o the_o moral_a allegorical_a or_o anagogical_a sense_n but_o that_o they_o do_v signify_v that_o they_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o fat_a and_o slothful_a belly_n and_o that_o they_o belly_n pass_v not_o on_o the_o head_n but_o only_o on_o the_o belly_n and_o even_o as_o they_o be_v but_o belly_n they_o do_v also_o very_a well_o know_v that_o other_o man_n do_v love_v more_o the_o belly_n then_o the_o head_n &_o notwithstanding_o that_o all_o have_v a_o goodly_a belly_n and_o love_v it_o well_o there_o be_v but_o a_o few_o which_o care_v much_o for_o the_o head_n the_o brain_n wit_n and_o understanding_n nor_o which_o take_v any_o thought_n to_o have_v it_o wherefore_o i_o believe_v that_o they_o have_v determine_v so_o much_o to_o ring_n their_o bell_n that_o they_o may_v break_v altogether_o the_o head_n of_o those_o which_o have_v yet_o a_o very_a little_a to_o that_o end_n that_o neither_o wit_n nor_o understand_v may_v abide_v in_o they_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o we_o may_v well_o make_v it_o a_o proverb_n as_o well_o as_o the_o ancient_n have_v make_v it_o of_o the_o basinne_n caudron_n and_o bell_n of_o dodonaeus_n behold_v the_o true_a exposition_n friend_n aristoph_n eusebius_n that_o i_o can_v at_o this_o time_n give_v unto_o thou_o and_o think_v not_o that_o thou_o can_v give_v unto_o i_o a_o better_a nor_o more_o proper_a except_o peradventure_o thou_o wilt_v say_v that_o they_o do_v the_o same_o after_o the_o imitation_n of_o the_o gallot_v curet_n and_o corybant_n priest_n of_o the_o goddess_n cybele_n cybele_n the_o mother_n of_o god_n who_o they_o do_v carry_v upon_o their_o shoulder_n in_o their_o procession_n sound_v of_o cymbal_n diodor._n drum_n bell_n and_o other_o such_o instrument_n which_o do_v make_v a_o great_a noise_n with_o the_o cry_n and_o sound_v of_o their_o litany_n which_o they_o go_v sing_v after_o as_o many_o cible_a ancient_a author_n do_v witness_v as_o well_o paynim_n as_o christian_n namely_o lactantius_n which_o allege_v some_o verse_n of_o ovid_n who_o among_o other_o in_o a_o few_o word_n speak_v of_o her_o feast_n comprehend_v all_o these_o thing_n say_v then_o forthwith_o shall_v be_v hear_v the_o home_n 4._o of_o berecynthia_n blow_n of_o cybele_n graundame_n of_o the_o god_n thapproch_a feast_n to_o show_v and_o eunuch_n play_v upon_o drum_n who_o noise_n the_o air_n do_v fill_v and_o ring_v out_o the_o bray_a blast_n of_o trumpet_n sound_v shrill_a she_o on_o their_o shoulder_n sit_v soft_a be_v bear_v about_o the_o town_n by_o priest_n and_o servant_n of_o her_o own_o with_o noise_n and_o shriek_a swoon_n epiphanius_n that_o good_a and_o learned_a bishop_n and_o of_o great_a estimation_n among_o the_o ancient_n do_v write_v a_o book_n that_o he_o epiphanius_n make_v of_o heresy_n say_v that_o there_o be_v in_o his_o time_n some_o woman_n of_o syria_n who_o do_v begin_v to_o carry_v in_o that_o sort_n the_o image_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o offer_v unto_o it_o oblation_n but_o he_o lady_n say_v that_o the_o same_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n be_v repress_v and_o beat_v down_o through_o the_o diligence_n of_o good_a bishop_n &_o pastor_n know_v that_o the_o same_o be_v none_o other_o thing_n but_o a_o imitation_n of_o the_o furor_n and_o madness_n of_o the_o paynim_n wherefore_o epiphanius_n number_v that_o error_n in_o the_o roll_n of_o the_o heresy_n that_o he_o have_v make_v and_o yet_o nevertheless_o our_o priest_n have_v not_o cease_v therefore_o to_o put_v it_o forth_o and_o more_o great_a idolatry_n than_o ever_o be_v among_o the_o priest_n of_o cybele_n and_o isis_n after_o who_o example_n they_o do_v carry_v their_o idol_n relic_n hearse_n and_o shrine_n and_o for_o to_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v their_o successor_n they_o have_v their_o head_n shave_v &_o their_o surples_n &_o many_o other_o ornament_n of_o linen_n and_o white_a cloth_n as_o those_o have_v as_o the_o poet_n say_v attend_v on_o the_o goddess_n then_o the_o crew_n both_o great_a and_o small_a ovid._n be_v clad_v in_o linen_n garment_n white_a to_o honour_v she_o withal_o and_o again_o he_o say_v these_o shave_a priest_n in_o white_a array_v ensue_v the_o goddess_n grace_n and_o make_v noise_n with_o sound_n of_o drum_n do_v follow_v she_o a_o pace_n forasmuch_o then_o as_o it_o be_v think_v that_o they_o make_v devil_n afraid_a and_o drive_v they_o away_o by_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o bell_n those_o there_o then_o ought_v to_o make_v they_o tremble_v and_o quake_v wherefore_o i_o think_v that_o forasmuch_o as_o our_o priest_n do_v say_v that_o their_o bell_n be_v the_o trumpet_n of_o the_o great_a king_n and_o that_o their_o streamer_n that_o they_o carry_v in_o their_o procession_n be_v his_o enseign_n and_o banner_n they_o ought_v also_o to_o carry_v and_o sound_v drum_n and_o trumpet_n for_o to_o make_v it_o better_o appear_v unto_o the_o devil_n that_o they_o will_v join_v a_o strong_a battle_n with_o he_o &_o that_o they_o come_v not_o with_o false_a ensign_n &_o that_o their_o quarrel_n be_v not_o the_o sport_n and_o play_v of_o little_a child_n and_o that_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v time_n the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o their_o old_a ancestor_n and_o predecessor_n to_o be_v abolish_v who_o we_o have_v of_o late_o name_v from_o who_o they_o do_v not_o much_o differ_v as_o touch_v their_o ceremony_n but_o the_o most_o great_a difference_n that_o i_o can_v find_v be_v that_o these_o here_o be_v not_o so_o chaste_a as_o the_o other_o be_v because_o they_o be_v not_o geld_v as_o they_o be_v for_o that_o shall_v be_v against_o their_o order_n and_o canon_n and_o many_o woman_n will_v be_v barren_a if_o we_o have_v not_o such_o saint_n for_o to_o make_v they_o bear_v child_n and_o as_o touch_v that_o that_o they_o do_v ring_v their_o bell_n against_o the_o time_n of_o thunder_n lyghtening_n and_o tempest_n and_o that_o they_o do_v conjure_v they_o they_o can_v deny_v but_o in_o the_o same_o they_o do_v follow_v the_o paynim_n who_o have_v their_o exorcism_n coniuratione_fw-la ringinge_n and_o other_o manner_n of_o do_n against_o they_o which_o do_v not_o much_o differ_v from_o those_o of_o these_o here_o it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o the_o popissant_a paynim_n have_v not_o such_o bell_n because_o they_o be_v not_o then_o use_v as_o they_o be_v now_o but_o in_o stead_n of_o they_o they_o clap_v their_o hand_n the_o one_o against_o a_o other_o for_o to_o make_v a_o noise_n &_o make_v a_o noise_n with_o their_o mouth_n for_o to_o appease_v 55_o and_o quallyfie_v the_o thunder_n and_o lyghtening_n after_o the_o manner_n as_o man_n do_v clap_v their_o horse_n and_o make_v much_o of_o they_o think_v that_o the_o same_o will_v serve_v in_o stead_n of_o a_o remedy_n that_o the_o lightning_n shall_v not_o strike_v
of_o certain_a shepherd_n who_o because_o they_o have_v hear_v and_o keep_v in_o mind_n the_o sacramental_a word_n do_v put_v bread_n upon_o a_o stone_n afterwards_o they_o pronounce_v the_o word_n that_o bread_n as_o they_o say_v be_v convert_v and_o change_v into_o flesh_n after_o the_o pronunciation_n of_o &_o word_n but_o fire_n and_o lightning_n fall_v sudden_o down_o from_o heaven_n upon_o they_o and_o kill_v they_o all_o hillarius_n the_o witness_n be_v well_o worthy_a of_o the_o doctor_n from_o who_o it_o proceed_v but_o he_o be_v not_o the_o first_o that_o have_v invent_v that_o fable_n for_o durant_n and_o other_o that_o have_v write_v of_o that_o matter_n do_v almost_o all_o of_o they_o allege_v it_o theophilus_n wherefore_o then_o have_v jesus_n christ_n command_v 24._o that_o his_o gospel_n shall_v be_v preach_v unto_o all_o creature_n without_o except_v either_o the_o lay_v people_n or_o the_o ignorant_a unto_o who_o yet_o nevertheless_o the_o supper_n be_v recite_v all_o at_o length_n wherefore_o have_v not_o he_o warn_v his_o apostle_n to_o keep_v those_o word_n secret_a and_o wherefore_o have_v they_o publish_v and_o write_v it_o all_o at_o length_n in_o their_o gospel_n book_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o all_o christian_n be_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n more_o worthy_a &_o more_o holy_a than_o the_o holy_a gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n eusebius_n you_o ought_v not_o to_o jest_n or_o mock_v for_o you_o do_v not_o yet_o know_v that_o god_n do_v behold_v you_o what_o say_v thou_o of_o the_o canon_n and_o memento_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v thou_o so_o foolish_a and_o bold_a that_o thou_o will_v find_v fault_n with_o it_o theophilus_n first_o make_v what_o it_o contain_v and_o after_o history_n thou_o shall_v understand_v what_o i_o will_v say_v eusebius_n i_o be_o very_a well_o content_a for_o i_o be_o very_o sure_a that_o you_o shall_v find_v nothing_o to_o reprove_v i_o theophilus_n i_o will_v recite_v it_o unto_o she_o word_n for_o word_n that_o thou_o shall_v not_o think_v that_o i_o have_v either_o add_v or_o diminish_v any_o thing_n for_o my_o own_o pleasure_n remember_v oh_o lord_n thy_o man_n servant_n and_o thy_o woman_n servant_n who_o have_v go_v before_o we_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o faith_n and_o do_v rest_n in_o the_o sleep_n of_o peace_n we_o beseech_v thou_o oh_o lord_n that_o it_o will_v please_v thou_o to_o grant_n unto_o they_o and_o unto_o all_o those_o that_o rest_n in_o christ_n place_n of_o comfort_n light_n and_o peace_n through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n amen_n first_o after_o that_o the_o priest_n have_v say_v remember_v oh_o lord_n thy_o man_n servant_n woman_n servant_n and_o handmaid_n there_o be_v a_o n●in_n a_o red_a letter_n which_o signify_v in_o that_o behalf_n that_o you_o must_v express_o name_v those_o for_o who_o the_o mass_n in_o song_n and_o in_o who_o name_n the_o money_n be_v pay_v for_o fay_v it_o hillarius_n i_o do_v know_v a_o man_n that_o sometime_o have_v be_v a_o priest_n and_o now_o live_v honest_o after_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o gospel_n who_o do_v confess_v unto_o i_o that_o all_o the_o while_n that_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n that_o he_o keep_v very_o good_a countenance_n in_o sing_v mass_n until_o he_o come_v unto_o that_o place_n but_o when_o he_o be_v come_v to_o the_o commemoration_n of_o those_o woman_n and_o handmaiden_n they_o enter_v so_o much_o into_o his_o head_n that_o afterwards_o he_o can_v not_o have_v his_o spirit_n in_o quiet_a eusebius_n because_o that_o he_o be_v a_o whoremonger_n he_o priest_n can_v not_o live_v chaste_o but_o give_v himself_o to_o be_v one_o of_o your_o society_n for_o to_o break_v his_o volue_v and_o to_o marry_v hillarius_n have_v he_o not_o do_v better_o they_o to_o burn_v through_o concupiscence_n and_o transgress_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n whoredom_n for_o to_o keep_v his_o vow_n as_o herode_fw-la who_o cause_v john_n baptist_n to_o be_v behead_v for_o to_o keep_v his_o oath_n have_v not_o he_o do_v better_o than_o those_o fat_a whoremonger_n who_o have_v rather_o to_o persevere_v in_o their_o whoredom_n and_o to_o abide_v still_o in_o their_o filthiness_n then_o to_o use_v the_o holy_a marriage_n which_o god_n have_v give_v to_o be_v 2_o a_o remedy_n unto_o all_o those_o y_fw-mi have_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o continency_n of_o which_o they_o do_v well_o know_v how_o far_o they_o be_v ●ron_n it_o god_n know_v what_o goodly_a redeemer_n &_o advocat_n y_fw-mi soul_n have_v of_o they_o between_o god_n &_o they_o now_o much_o do_v you_o think_v y_fw-mi they_o have_v who_o do_v think_v more_o upon_o their_o handmaid_n when_o they_o say_v their_o memento_n then_o on_o the_o soul_n of_o purgatory_n for_o who_o they_o do_v singe_v the_o mass_n and_o although_o that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v true_a they_o make_v you_o often_o idolater_n for_o although_o that_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o god_n be_v realy_a in_o the_o host_n yet_o nevertheless_o their_o book_n which_o they_o call_v rationale_n divinorum_fw-la officiorum_fw-la officiorum_fw-la witness_v that_o if_o y_fw-mi priest_n have_v not_o the_o intent_n to_o consecrate_v when_o he_o pronounce_v the_o sacramental_a consecrate_v word_n he_o do_v not_o consecrate_v and_o so_o by_o that_o mean_v it_o be_v not_o god_n but_o the_o bread_n abide_v still_o bread_n and_o consequent_o all_o those_o which_o do_v worship_v it_o be_v idolater_n for_o they_o do_v worship_v the_o bread_n and_o not_o god_n wherefore_o i_o refer_v it_o to_o thine_o own_o self_n to_o think_v when_o those_o maidseruaunte_n do_v enter_v into_o their_o mind_n and_o such_o other_o fantasy_n which_o be_v as_o good_a stuff_n what_o intent_n they_o have_v when_o they_o think_v thereon_o and_o what_o god_n they_o can_v forge_v thomas_n by_o that_o reckon_v the_o priest_n which_o be_v lent._n burn_v of_o late_a at_o roll_n which_o be_v between_o lausanna_n and_o geneva_n for_o that_o he_o be_v a_o sorcerer_n ought_v to_o have_v make_v the_o people_n idolater_n for_o he_o confess_v that_o he_o be_v twenty-four_o year_n a_o sorcerer_n and_o which_o be_v more_o he_o have_v also_o his_o whore_n which_o be_v a_o sorceress_n who_o be_v burn_v aswell_o as_o he_o who_o do_v make_v she_o a_o sorceress_n forasmuch_o then_o as_o he_o deny_v god_n cream_n and_o baptism_n as_o all_o sorcerer_n do_v confess_v in_o their_o process_n if_o it_o be_v so_o what_o faith_n can_v he_o have_v to_o the_o mass_n and_o what_o consecration_n ought_v he_o to_o make_v hillarius_n the_o papist_n do_v think_v that_o the_o same_o be_v well_o provide_v for_o by_o the_o counsel_n which_o the_o book_n above_o allege_a give_v they_o for_o to_o avoid_v such_o a_o inconucnience_n he_o counsel_v the_o christian_n that_o he_o do_v worship_n the_o host_n with_o such_o condition_n say_v in_o his_o heart_n lord_n god_n if_o thou_o be_v there_o i_o do_v worship_n thou_o if_o thou_o be_v not_o there_o i_o do_v not_o worship_v thou_o and_o that_o counsel_n be_v take_v from_o transubstantiation_n thomas_n aquinus_n who_o resolve_v that_o question_n after_o you_o sort_n for_o by_o that_o condition_n all_o adoration_n if_o there_o be_v but_o bread_n he_o avoid_v to_o be_v a_o idolater_n but_o i_o pray_v thou_o consider_v a_o little_a whether_o you_o our_o faith_n be_v well_o build_v see_v that_o it_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o intent_n of_o a_o priest_n and_o how_o that_o it_o can_v be_v faith_n see_v always_o that_o it_o be_v in_o doubt_n eusebius_n thou_o be_v a_o slanderer_n for_o all_o y_fw-es doctor_n say_v not_o so_o hillarius_n i_o do_v well_o know_v that_o they_o be_v not_o all_o of_o one_o agreement_n and_o that_o nicholas_n de_fw-fr plove_n say_v that_o the_o intent_n be_v necessary_o requisite_a and_o not_o the_o attent_a and_o that_o it_o suffice_v sacerd_n that_o y_fw-es priest_n have_v a_o general_a intent_n to_o consecrate_v although_o that_o he_o be_v not_o always_o attentive_a and_o think_v not_o still_o on_o that_o that_o he_o say_v and_o do_v wherein_o nevertheless_o he_o sin_v great_o all_o do_v travail_n as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v to_o find_v reason_n out_o of_o reason_n but_o it_o suffice_v i_o so_o that_o the_o same_o which_o i_o speak_v be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n which_o give_v the_o reason_n of_o your_o divine_a service_n and_o ceremony_n theophilus_n thou_o have_v no_o good_a manner_n in_o always_o interrupt_v we_o in_o our_o talk_n hillarius_n what_o will_v thou_o have_v i_o to_o do_v when_o i_o remember_v the_o great_a folly_n that_o they_o have_v speak_v &_o do_v i_o be_o constrain_v to_o make_v some_o parenthesis_n &_o some_o little_a digression_n but_o leave_v not_o off_o to_o return_v unto_o thy_o matter_n &_o to_o go_v forward_o with_o it_o i_o believe_v
resurni_fw-la 42._o benedictio_fw-la pera_fw-la &_o baculi_fw-la 42._o benedictio_fw-la annuh_n &_o lecti_fw-la 42._o benedictio_fw-la domus_fw-la novae_fw-la 42._o benedictio_fw-la casulae_fw-la 42._o benedictio_fw-la ad_fw-la omne_fw-la 42._o benedictio_fw-la panis_fw-la &_o seminum_fw-la 42._o beautify_v the_o sepulchre_n with_o flower_n 45._o brernoye_n 66._o blasphemy_n most_o horrible_a 105._o blasphemy_n of_o the_o cordelier_n 106._o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o missell_n &_o the_o manuel_n of_o the_o priest_n 42._o blondus_n 47._o body_n and_o burnall_a of_o moses_n 103._o body_n of_o dead_a man_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o idol_n of_o the_o paynim_n 105._o the_o bone_n of_o christ_n whole_a 50._o the_o book_n of_o job_n dedicate_v to_o the_o dead_a 70._o vile_a book_n 7._o good_a book_n despise_v and_o forbid_v 8._o book_n discever_v abuse_n 9_o joyful_a book_n book_n and_o talk_v that_o be_v filthy_a 9_o latin_n book_n 4._o french_a book_n 4._o saint_n brandon_n 95_o bury_v of_o the_o poor_a in_o the_o night_n 33._o bury_v one_o before_o he_o be_v dead_a 64._o bury_v of_o the_o rich_a 68_o bury_v of_o pallas_n 68_o bury_v of_o the_o poor_a 69._o bury_v of_o the_o turk_n 70_o buryal_n of_o daynt_n 105._o buryall_n sell_v 43._o those_o dishonour_n god_n which_o do_v not_o honest_o bury_v the_o dead_a 67._o bury_v of_o the_o barbarian_n 66._o bury_v of_o a_o ass_n 68_o bury_v of_o a_o raven._n 69._o butchery_n of_o the_o priest_n 65_o bishop_n tibaud_n 89_o bishop_n the_o priest_n bawd_n 43_o c._n calendar_n of_o the_o shepherd_n fol._n 27_o the_o candle_n that_o go_v before_o 64._o cane_n sepulehrale●_n 58_o sea_n calf_n 75._o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n &_o the_o alcoran_n forbid_v to_o be_v read_v 80._o canonization_n 78._o canonization_n of_o saint_n 31._o capernaite_n 49._o 50._o carnal_a gospeler_n 39_o the_o cause_n wherefore_o god_n do_v chastise_v we_o in_o this_o world_n 83._o the_o cause_n wherefore_o the_o purgatory_n of_o jesus_n christ_n have_v be_v unknown_a 57_o cerberus_n the_o porter_n of_o hell_n 51._o chanong_n of_o mount_n falcon_n 58._o char●bdis_n 91._o charon_n the_o ferryman_n 87._o the_o charity_n of_o the_o ancient_a christian_n 54._o the_o chastisement_n of_o the_o father_n tourard_v the_o child_n 84._o christ_n and_o antechrist_n 88_o the_o christian_n all_o in_o all_o 8._o the_o christian_a tributarye_n before_o he_o isborne_a and_o after_o he_o be_v dead_a 41._o churchyard_n 67._o cicero_n and_o catilina_n 7._o cocytus_n 92._o commemoration_n of_o the_o dead_a 77._o commemoration_n of_o mortir_n 77._o complaint_n of_o a_o curate_n 65._o comparison_n of_o the_o rich_a man_n and_o of_o lazarus_n 98._o comparison_n of_o the_o true_a priest_n and_o physician_n 76_o conjurer_n 100l_n conjure_v 104._o conjure_v the_o time_n 75._o confession_n 41._o confirmation_n 41._o the_o confine_n of_o hell_n 23._o consilium_fw-la elibertinum_n 53._o consecration_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 103._o counsel_n of_o demas_n 13._o counsel_n to_o worship_v the_o host_n ●1_n to_o bear_v y_fw-mi cross_v of_o jesus_n christ_n 103_o the_o croyzatde_fw-mi 54._o cry_n of_o the_o damn_a 26._o the_o cruelty_n of_o pope_n clement_n 43_o the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o priest_n towards_o the_o soul_n 62._o custom_n of_o the_o bigordian_n 45._o custom_n of_o thessalia_n 103_o custom_n of_o the_o egyptian_n 77._o custom_n to_o praise_v the_o dead_a 77._o ancient_a custom_n 70_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o serye_n money_n of_o charon_n 45._o d._n day_n dedicate_v unto_o the_o dead_a 99_o dama●cenus_n 96._o dangerous_a beggar_n 55._o darkness_n of_o the_o world_n 1_o dathan_n and_o abiron_n 57_o daughter_n of_o the_o horfeleach_n 52_o the_o dead_a why_o be_v they_o call_v trespass_n 87_o death_n do_v mock_v the_o priest_n 65._o death_n buy_v for_o money_n 45._o holy_a deceive_v 9_o decree_n and_o canon_n 88_o delyveraunce_n from_o hell_n 95_o demand_n tribute_n of_o the_o dead_a 4●_o demetrians_n 91._o democritus_n 20._o depart_v out_o of_o egypt_n 93._o diana_n the_o goddess_n of_o the_o ephesian_n 93._o dicearchus_n 70._o the_o deity_n 38._o difference_n of_o smnes_fw-la and_o the_o diversity_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o dead_a 30._o difference_n between_o to_o speak_v evil_a and_o to_o speak_v the_o truth_n 53._o the_o dyke_n of_o the_o fortress_n of_o the_o papist_n 91._o diodorus_n 77._o diogenes_n 34._o 20._o disguysing_n of_o man_n like_o woeeman_n 106._o descend_v into_o hell_n in_o sycile_n 24._o the_o description_n of_o the_o hill_n aetna_n 25._o dispensation_n for_o to_o eat_v flesh_n and_o white_a meat_n 43._o disputation_n of_o ciccero_n 10._o to_o dispute_v with_o heretic_n 59_o devil_n visible_a 26._o the_o devil_n zazel_n or_o azazel_n 101_o division_n of_o the_o infernal_a cosmography_n 28_o diversity_n of_o purgation_n 31_o diverse_a opinion_n of_o the_o deliverance_n of_o traianus_n 95._o the_o doctrinal_a of_o alexander_n 6._o doctrine_n papistical_a 95_o doctrine_n of_o man_n mingle_v with_o the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n 15._o dodonaeum_fw-la aes_fw-la dodonae_fw-la lebe●es_fw-la 74_o the_o dormouse_n 36._o drink_v upon_o the_o hide_n to_o come_v 6●_o to_o drive_v away_o the_o dutell_n by_o water_n 102._o to_o drive_v away_o the_o dwell_v through_o fast_n and_o prayer_n 39_o the_o purge_a drogue_n of_o the_o paynim_n 33._o dumb_a dog_n and_o crier_n 5●_o e._n ear_n delyeate_a and_o pleasant_a fol._n 12._o to_o eat_v jesus_n christ_n 49._o to_o eat_v jacob_n 50._o to_o eat_v the_o skin_n and_o the_o bone_n 51._o egyptian_n at_o this_o present_a time_n 1_o egypt_n and_o babylon_n 2._o eloquence_n apostolical_a and_o human_a 5._o eloquence_n without_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n 7._o emperor_n and_o pope_n abolish_v the_o statute_n of_o their_o predecessor_n 88_o epiphanius_n 74_o epicurian_n 17._o eridanus_n 90._o reichtho_n the_o sorcerer_n 103._o error_n of_o saul_n 1._o error_n touch_v the_o honour_n and_o invocation_n of_o saint_n 78_o eschines_n and_o demosthenes_n 7._o the_o estate_n of_o the_o dend_n 79._o aethna_n the_o hill_n gibello_fw-la 24._o eurotos_fw-la and_o peneus_n 90._o example_n of_o eliseus_n 34_o example_n of_o the_o smith_n 36_o extreme_a unction_n 42._o excommunication_n for_o money_n 68_o extractor_n of_o the_o five_o essence_n 22._o f._n fable_n of_o the_o dog_n and_o the_o ass_n 19_o feign_a fable_n upon_o the_o bittory_n of_o lazarus_n 27_o fable_n of_o a_o cordelier_n 102._o the_o poetical_a fable_n of_o enceladus_n and_o of_o the_o giant_n 25._o faith._n 10._o fall_v of_o angel_n and_o of_o man_n 97._o fall_v of_o peter_n 1._o faun_n and_o satyr_n 26_o fall_v of_o the_o soul_n 101_o fast_n &_o prayer_n of_o the_o christian_n 39_o feast_n and_o procession_n of_o cybele_n 74._o fast_v hurtful_a unto_o those_o that_o be_v subject_a to_o anger_n 62._o feast_n of_o saint_n fradnce_n 105_o feasto_n ot_fw-mi the_o dead_a 24._o f●●ldes_n eliseas_n 32._o the_o felicity_n of_o louse_n and_o their_o boldness_n 105._o the_o fire_n insatiable_a 52._o fire_n and_o water_n 88_o the_o fire_n begin_v in_o purgatory_n 82._o the_o celestial_a and_o evangely_n call_v fire_n 56._o the_o true_a fire_n of_o purgatory_n 56._o the_o true_a fire_n of_o purgatory_n 56._o to_o ash_n in_o trouble_a water_n 92._o fisher_n of_o christ_n and_o antechrist_n 92._o fisher_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n 92_o fisher_n forsake_v 93._o fisher_n of_o soul_n 92._o flear_v and_o mangler_n of_o latin_a 5._o fleread_v novercae_fw-la tumulum_fw-la 6._o the_o flood_n of_o christ_n 91._o flood_n of_o hell_n their_o name_n and_o interpretaciens_fw-la 89._o flood_n of_o wine_n and_o milk_n 89._o flood_n of_o paradise_n 89_o 90._o the_o forbid_v of_o jultan_n the_o apostate_n 16_o the_o forbid_v of_o book_n 90._o formosus_fw-la 88_o the_o forchead_n of_o the_o hypocrite_n and_o of_o the_o prophet_n 18._o to_o forget_v god._n 91._o foundation_n for_o the_o poor_a 70._o foundation_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o transubstantiation_n 82_o foundation_n of_o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a 101_o the_o fool_n counsel_v the_o wise_a 2._o fountain_n of_o excessive_a cooldenesse_n and_o heat_n 26._o funus_fw-la ●uneralia_fw-la 70._o the_o furnayce_n of_o purgatory_n 55._o g._n ganges_n fol_n 90._o gaudeamus_fw-la of_o the_o priest_n 55_o unto_o who_o we_o must_v give_v 54._o the_o geography_n of_o hell_n 23._o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n and_o language_n 4._o gluttony_n 99_o god_n pluto_n 55._o god_n have_v not_o institute_v sacrafice_n nor_o feast_n for_o the_o dead_a 99_o the_o true_a god_n and_o that_o of_o the_o priest_n 48_o tributary_n god_n &_o to_o be_v sell_v 54._o to_o do_v good_a while_o we_o be_v alive_a 98._o gospel_n publish_a unto_o all_o man_n 80._o griffin_n and_o hell_n raven_n 26._o gregorianist_n 79._o greek_n and_o latin_n 77._o h._n the_o habit_n and_o apparel_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o religious_a christian_n 106_o harpy_n 52._o hebrus_n 90._o hechelberge_n 26._o hell_n and_o hell_n
dead_a pamin_n do_v allow_v the_o ceremony_n feast_n and_o anniversary_n of_o the_o dead_a yet_o nevertheless_o they_o do_v also_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v not_o now_o needful_a to_o bestow_v any_o great_a cost_n about_o they_o but_o that_o they_o content_v themselves_o with_o a_o little_a thing_n even_o as_o ovid_n the_o master_n of_o ceremony_n witness_v 2_o in_o his_o calendar_n in_o these_o word_n it_o be_v a_o honour_n dew_n to_o soul_n and_o body_n that_o be_v dead_a to_o bring_v such_o gift_n to_o yerksome_a grave_n as_o satisfy_v their_o mead_n the_o soul_n do_v much_o delight_v therein_o and_o much_o the_o same_o do_v crave_v by_o mean_n whereof_o themselves_o they_o think_v from_o pluto_n force_n to_o save_v with_o flower_n green_a and_o garland_n gay_a their_o head_n they_o do_v adorn_v and_o wine_n and_o salt_n be_v put_v thereto_o with_o other_o fruit_n and_o corn_n nor_o thing_n of_o more_o weight_n i_o reprove_v for_o soul_n therein_o delight_n on_o grave_n say_v thou_o thy_o prayer_n then_o that_o ghost_n may_v have_v their_o right_n whereunto_o agree_v also_o the_o dracle_n of_o apollo_n speak_v apollo_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o infernal_a god_n and_o of_o the_o soul_n in_o these_o word_n the_o god_n which_o with_o their_o body_n black_a about_o the_o world_n do_v fly_v which_o also_o daily_o sacrifice_v require_v incessant_o jucense_n of_o meal_n and_o salt_v fruit_n and_o also_o pleasant_a cake_n see_v that_o you_o make_v together_o mix_v as_o dainty_a delicate_n for_o that_o cause_n they_o use_v in_o that_o time_n there_o to_o set_v dead_a such_o meat_n upon_o a._n stpue●to_o the_o cude_n that_o the_o good_a scules_a and_o shadow_n shall_v come_v and_o banquet_v there_o &_o they_o call_v that_o banquet_n and_o supper_n that_o they_o make_v for_o they_o silicernium_n silyeernium_n because_o that_o the_o shadow_n and_o the_o soul_n behold_v it_o in_o stlence_n they_o do_v also_o call_v it_o feralis_fw-la coena_fw-la as_o we_o e●na_fw-la may_v say_v the_o supper_n of_o the_o dead_a of_o which_o speak_v lwenal_a confirm_v the_o thing_n above_o speak_v after_o this_o manner_n in_o platter_n small_a the_o supper_n they_o do_v put_v 5_o ●o●_n body_n dead_a in_o loathsome_a grave_n lay_v up_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n persius_n speak_v of_o he_o which_o consume_v 6_o his_o good_n foolish_o the_o heir_n with_o wrathful_a ire_n do_v pine_v to_o see_v thy_o good_n so_o spend_v nor_o funeral_n feast_n esteem_n will_v he_o not_o make_v to_o his_o intent_n i_o do_v think_v that_o baruch_n do_v understand_v by_o such_o supper_n 30._o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o babylonian_n and_o idolater_n say_v the_o priest_n sit_v in_o their_o temple_n have_v open_a clothes_n who_o bead_n and_o beard_n be_v shave_v and_o have_v nothing_o upon_o their_o bead_n roar_v and_o cry_v upon_o their_o god_n as_o man_n do_v at_o the_o feast_n when_o one_o be_v dead_a he_o show_v in_o sue_v word_n the_o manner_n that_o the_o idolater_n have_v both_o in_o their_o divine_a service_n for_o the_o god_n and_o the_o office_n of_o the_o dead_a hillarius_n and_o what_o have_v they_o that_o we_o have_v not_o do_v not_o our_o priest_n roar_v and_o cry_n both_o after_o their_o god_n and_o after_o the_o dead_a may_v we_o not_o right_o call_v their_o mass_n of_o requiem_n the_o supper_n of_o the_o dead_a for_o they_o have_v all_o that_o which_o baruch_n have_v comprehend_v without_o fail_v one_o hair_n of_o one_o head_n it_o may_v have_v peradventure_o some_o differ●ce_n in_o that_o that_o the_o mass_n be_v song_n in_o the_o morning_n wherefore_o it_o shall_v soeme_n more_o fit_a to_o call_v it_o the_o draft_n of_o wine_n or_o the_o breakfast_n or_o dinner_n of_o the_o dead_a thomas_n that_o which_o thou_o have_v speak_v to_o cover_v the_o able_a to_o the_o d●●●_n be_v use_v yet_o at_o this_o day_n of_o some_o who_o at_o the_o fence_n that_o be_v make_v when_o one_o be_v dead_a do_v leave_v all_o night_n the_o table_n cover_v and_o set_v full_a soul_n of_o meat_n be_v of_o that_o opinion_n that_o the_o soul_n do_v come_v thither_o to_o banquet_n theophilus_n master_n john_n belet_n witness_v nevertheless_o chair_n in_o his_o book_n that_o he_o make_v of_o the_o legend_n of_o saint_n and_o feast_n of_o all_o the_o year_n that_o the_o ancient_n have_v ordain_v the_o feast_n of_o saint_n peter_n chair_n in_o february_n upon_o such_o a_o day_n as_o the_o panym_v accustom_v to_o offer_v yearly_a wine_n and_o other_o meat_n upon_o the_o sepulcher_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o to_o banquet_v they_o think_v that_o the_o soul_n and_o shadow_n which_o pass_v by_o the_o sepulcher_n will_v come_v &_o eat_v wherefore_o to_o abolish_v that_o superstitious_a &_o witked_a custom_n they_o have_v constitute_v that_o that_o feast_n shall_v be_v celebrate_v the_o which_o for_o that_o cause_n be_v call_v at_o the_o beginning_n the_o feast_n of_o saint_n peter_n of_o meat_n &_o banquet_n hillarius_n and_o what_o have_v they_o gain_v by_o change_v it_o the_o poor_a christian_a people_n have_v no_o profit_n by_o it_o and_o there_o be_v no_o gain_n but_o for_o the_o priest_n which_o in_o ste_o ede_fw-mi thereof_o have_v at_o this_o day_n their_o stone_n &_o altar_n upon_o which_o they_o do_v lay_v their_o table_n clothes_n and_o afterwards_o when_o the_o table_n be_v spread_v and_o cover_v we_o must_v take_v care_n for_o the_o meat_n and_o pay_v the_o banquet_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o we_o cate_z nothing_o at_o all_o but_o be_v as_o the_o paynim_n which_o bring_v the_o supper_n to_o the_o dead_a afterward_o they_o only_o look_v on_o they_o not_o dare_v to_o touch_v it_o which_o be_v also_o the_o one_o of_o the_o cause_n wherefore_o that_o banquet_n be_v call_v silicernium_n as_o witness_v donatus_n for_o they_o do_v think_v that_o whosoever_o do_v taste_v eat_v or_o drink_v of_o that_o which_o be_v offer_v unto_o the_o terent._n dead_a be_v pollute_v and_o defile_v but_o our_o priest_n fear_v not_o that_o for_o they_o themselves_o do_v eat_v with_o they_o domestical_a paynim_n nymph_n which_o bevoure_v and_o consume_v with_o they_o the_o relief_n which_o remain_v for_o that_o soul_n for_o such_o nymph_n do_v take_v no_o less_o pleasure_n in_o sweet_a &_o deheate_v meat_n than_o those_o of_o the_o paynim_n who_o will_v that_o one_o shall_v offer_v unto_o they_o wine_n and_o ●ony_n as_o witnessoth_o the_o oracle_n of_o apollorsay_v the_o nymph_n be_v glad_a and_o make_v good_a fare_n apollo_n with_o honey_n and_o wine_n which_o pleasant_a be_v in_o steed_n of_o they_o we_o have_v those_o paliard_n &_o whorehunter_n unto_o who_o we_o must_v offer_v under_o the_o title_n and_o name_n of_o the_o soul_n who_o endeavour_n themselves_o so_o well_o that_o nothing_o of_o the_o offering_n remain_v although_o that_o that_o shadow_n and_o soul_n diminish_v they_o nothing_o at_o al._n for_o they_o bave_z not_o very_o great_a belly_n except_o peradventure_o there_o be_v drunkard_n like_v unto_o those_o of_o the_o bawd_n unto_o when_o propeise_n give_v the_o requiescant_fw-la in_o pace_n say_v bawd_n thou_o slink_a bawd_n and_o filthy_a whore_n &_o strumpet_n all_o forlornt_v thy_o loathsome_a tomb_n be_v over_o groan_v with_o sharp_a &_o prick_a thorn_n thy_o ghost_n '_o be_v dry_a &_o before_o a_o thirst_n &_o so_o will_v still_o remain_v against_o thy_o will_n it_o must_v be_v so_o why_o shall_v i_o to_o thou_o sane_a thomas_n yet_o nevertheless_o a_o man_n shall_v find_v shadow_n which_o do_v eat_v very_o well_o and_o which_o have_v good_a tooth_n &_o great_a belly_n hillarius_n if_o thou_o do_v take_v the_o shadow_n for_o those_o belly_n which_o come_v unto_o the_o banquet_n not_o be_v bid_v with_o those_o which_o be_v the_o gest_n i_o grant_v unto_o thou_o that_o such_o shadow_n have_v not_o the_o taste_n in_o the_o tooth_n nor_o live_v not_o of_o the_o dew_n as_o the_o grasshopper_n or_o of_o the_o wind_n as_o the_o chameleon_n but_o the_o shadow_n of_o which_o i_o speak_v be_v of_o another_o nature_n the_o ancient_n call_v those_o who_o thou_o speak_v 1._o off_o shadow_n because_o that_o they_o follow_v and_o accompany_v those_o that_o be_v bid_v as_o the_o shatowe_n sollow_v and_o accompany_v the_o body_n and_o under_o colour_n of_o they_o all_o though_o that_o they_o be_v not_o call_v by_o he_o that_o make_v the_o banquet_n do_v keep_v nevertheless_o company_n with_o the_o gest_n &_o sit_v at_o the_o table_n with_o they_o after_o that_o sort_n do_v plutarch_n 55_o expound_v it_o and_o horace_n among_o the_o latius_fw-la have_v often_o use_v it_o for_o when_o such_o shadow_n be_v at_o the_o table_n they_o do_v effectual_o show_v that_o they_o be_v not_o vain_a &_o empty_a shadow_n but_o of_o body_n altogether_o fat_a
either_o he_o will_v become_v altogether_o without_o god_n &_o religion_n thing_n or_o else_o he_o will_v forge_v and_o invent_v a_o new_a after_o his_o own_o brain_n on_o the_o coutrarye_n if_o one_o give_v bym_a ceremony_n for_o to_o hold_v he_o in_o religion_n and_o in_o his_o office_n he_o will_v make_v of_o they_o god_n and_o idol_n and_o will_v put_v all_o his_o trust_n in_o the_o outward_a visible_a and_o material_a ceremony_n and_o will_v forsake_v the_o principal_a and_o spiritual_a thing_n signify_v by_o those_o ceremony_n and_o in_o steed_n to_o serve_v he_o as_o for_o degree_n and_o show_n for_o to_o attain_v unto_o the_o true_a spiritual_a religion_n and_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o true_a temple_n of_o god_n stay_v himself_o upon_o the_o degree_n and_o before_o the_o gate_n and_o will_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o house_n as_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n in_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n who_o have_v always_o more_o esteem_v the_o exterior_a ceremony_n than_o those_o by_o which_o god_n will_v teach_v they_o now_o if_o the_o same_o be_v happen_v unto_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o ceremony_n ordain_v of_o god_n himself_o as_o all_o the_o prophet_n do_v witness_n what_o may_v happen_v unto_o the_o ceremony_n and_o tradition_n invent_v by_o man_n especial_o when_o the_o church_n have_v false_a prophet_n or_o negligent_a and_o covetous_a pastor_n and_o shepherd_n which_o have_v no_o care_n of_o the_o health_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o people_n and_o which_o do_v not_o travail_v to_o pull_v away_o the_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n but_o rather_o to_o augment_n and_o increase_v it_o for_o to_o abuse_v the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o poor_a simple_a people_n to_o their_o profit_n and_o filthy_a gain_n curse_a and_o too_o execrable_a be_v that_o which_o we_o at_o this_o day_n do_v prove_v and_o feel_v for_o in_o steed_n to_o have_v abolish_v by_o the_o feast_n of_o candlemas_n the_o old_a idolatry_n one_o have_v augment_v and_o confirm_v it_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o the_o which_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o dangerous_a that_o the_o mask_n and_o dysguisinge_v of_o satan_n be_v better_a paint_a out_o and_o have_v find_v out_o name_n and_o title_n more_o goodly_a and_o favourable_a as_o be_v that_o of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n the_o mother_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o have_v be_v already_o touch_v in_o speak_v of_o pantheon_n hillarius_n let_v we_o consider_v all_o the_o matter_n word_n by_o word_n and_o thou_o shall_v see_v whether_o that_o in_o the_o feast_n of_o mass_n candlemas_n we_o do_v not_o celebrate_v the_o februale_n lupercale_n proserpinales_fw-la and_o floral_n of_o the_o paynim_n first_o the_o name_n of_o the_o purisication_n agree_v very_o well_o with_o the_o name_n of_o february_n and_o of_o the_o februale_n which_o do_v also_o signify_v februales_n purification_n afterwards_o that_o purification_n be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n in_o who_o name_n man_n do_v bless_v consecrate_v and_o be_v be_v candle_n taper_n of_o war_n and_o torch_n the_o paynim_n have_v all_o the_o same_o miracle_n or_o the_o like_a in_o their_o lupercale_n in_o that_o same_o time_n andmoneth_n and_o in_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o god_n else_o luno_fw-it the_o which_o they_o call_v februla_n februalis_fw-la &_o februata_n which_o signify_v purify_v or_o purisicative_a because_o that_o the_o purification_n be_v make_v in_o her_o feast_n and_o chief_o the_o same_o of_o the_o woman_n the_o which_o the_o lupercal_a priest_n do_v purify_v beat_v they_o upon_o hand_n and_o back_o with_o scourge_n and_o whip_n make_v of_o goat_n skill_n and_o with_o the_o cloak_n of_o juno_n with_o which_o they_o do_v cover_v they_o chief_o for_o to_o make_v they_o bear_v child_n but_o i_o be_o certain_a that_o for_o to_o do_v such_o miracle_n the_o gown_n and_o cloak_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o monk_n have_v more_o virtue_n than_o the_o same_o of_o luno_fw-it and_o i_o béeléeve_v that_o the_o woman_n which_o have_v be_v cover_v with_o it_o be_v barren_a by_o nature_n except_o they_o return_v more_o sertile_a and_o fruitful_a theophilus_n saint_n augustine_n make_v also_o mention_v of_o a_o goddess_n name_v meria_n who_o he_o also_o call_v februa_n meria_n because_o that_o the_o paynim_n do_v believe_v that_o she_o purge_v the_o woman_n of_o their_o issue_n of_o blood_n and_o stay_v they_o every_o month_n and_o chief_o after_o the_o conception_n and_o deliver_v of_o child_n but_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o be_v not_o that_o luno_fw-it of_o who_o thou_o speak_v off_o hillarius_n we_o can_v doubt_v of_o it_o for_o that_o office_n be_v also_o assign_v unto_o she_o and_o for_o that_o cause_n they_o have_v call_v ●_o it_o fluona_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o flur_n and_o issue_n of_o blood_n but_o our_o priest_n have_v now_o give_v that_o office_n unto_o the_o virgin_n marry_o and_o do_v cause_n the_o woman_n to_o be_v purify_v after_o their_o delivery_n when_o that_o they_o be_v rise_v from_o their_o bed_n as_o the_o jew_n do_v as_o though_o jesus_n christ_n have_v not_o be_v yet_o come_v and_o as_o though_o we_o be_v under_o the_o ceremovy_n of_o the_o law_n theophilus_n durand_n also_o witness_v that_o in_o that_o same_o feast_n the_o roman_n from_o five_o year_n to_o five_o year_n the_o first_o day_n purif_n of_o february_n do_v purify_v all_o the_o night_n the_o town_n with_o taper_n &_o torch_n light_v in_o the_o honour_n of_o februa_n the_o goddess_n the_o mother_n of_o god_n mars_n whem_o they_o account_v for_o the_o god_n of_o battle_n to_o the_o end_n he_o we_o ulde_v give_v unto_o mars_n they_o victory_n and_o they_o call_v also_o that_o feast_n ambuibales_n because_o of_o the_o procession_n in_o which_o they_o carry_v that_o host_n and_o amburbales_n sacrament_n that_o they_o do_v sacrifice_n with_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o sacrifice_n which_o they_o make_v by_o the_o town_n &_o village_n and_o round_o about_o the_o same_o and_o by_o the_o field_n as_o we_o do_v in_o the_o rogation_n week_n and_o on_o christmas_n day_n furthermore_o regation_n man_n do_v sacrifice_v that_o same_o very_a time_n unto_o pluto_n who_o for_o that_o cause_n as_o witness_v isidorus_n be_v name_v februus_n and_o they_o do_v in_o like_a manner_n do_v sacrifice_n unto_o other_o 12._o infernal_a god_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o their_o ancestor_n and_o offer_v unto_o they_o host_n watch_v all_o night_n sing_v vigiles_fw-la with_o taper_n and_o torch_n burn_v to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v have_v pity_n and_o compassion_n of_o the_o poor_a soul_n that_o be_v dead_a the_o woman_n also_o celebrate_v the_o feast_n of_o candlemas_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o goddess_n ceres_n and_o of_o her_o daughter_n proserpina_n because_o that_o pluto_n that_o god_n of_o hell_n for_o her_o beauty_n have_v ravish_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o month_n &_o that_o her_o mother_n ceres_n seek_v for_o she_o by_o hill_n &_o valley_n be_v light_v in_o the_o night_n with_o torch_n &_o lamp_n in_o actna_n that_o hill_n of_o sicily_n as_z that_o poetical_a fable_n do_v witness_v hillarius_n theu_n have_v all_o ●dged_a durand_n the_o master_n of_o that_o papistical_a ceremony_n &_o i_o will_v allege_v unto_o thou_o a_o other_o which_o be_v of_o no_o less_o credit_n of_o who_o thou_o have_v already_o often_o time_n hear_v the_o witness_n the_o which_o i_o do_v bring_v forth_o again_o for_o confirmation_n of_o the_o word_n of_o durand_n out_o of_o that_o book_n in_o which_o he_o describe_v the_o feast_n of_o ceres_n say_v among_o other_o of_o his_o word_n as_o follow_v yea_o there_o in_o steed_n of_o flame_a lamp_n 4●_o the_o pine_n tree_n they_o do_v use_v hereof_o the_o torch_n then_o grant_v be_v for_o ceres_n sacred_a muse_n theophilus_n for_o that_o cause_n say_v he_o that_o in_o remembrance_n ●ergius_fw-la of_o the_o same_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o month_n of_o february_n they_o purify_v the_o city_n and_o go_v in_o procession_n round_o about_o the_o same_o in_o steed_n whereof_o pope_n sergius_n have_v command_v &_o establish_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o purification_n of_o our_o lady_n and_o if_o thou_o think_v that_o i_o speak_v without_o book_n and_o pu●●_n that_o i_o have_v invent_v the_o same_o of_o myself_o i_o do_v send_v thou_o unto_o your_o own_o book_n &_o chief_o unto_o durand_n of_o who_o i_o think_v that_o there_o want_v not_o much_o but_o that_o i_o have_v recite_v unto_o thou_o word_n by_o word_n almost_o all_o that_o which_o thou_o has●e_v now_o hear_v of_o i_o hillarius_n he_o ought_v also_o to_o add_v that_o the_o weep_n lamentation_n &_o sour_a look_n that_o they_o do_v make_v in_o their_o temple_n the_o passion_n week_n the_o which_o they_o call_v the_o great_a &_o holy_a week_n &_o chief_o the_o apish_a trick_n
of_o the_o holy_a friday_n be_v proceed_v from_o that_o original_n &_o beginning_n for_o as_o that_o woman_n celebrate_v the_o cereales_fw-la &_o proserpinales_fw-la with_o lamentation_n represent_v the_o sorrow_n which_o ceres_n do_v take_v because_o of_o her_o daughter_n proserpina_n which_o be_v ravish_v &_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o adoniales_n in_o that_o honour_n of_o venus_n bewail_v and_o lament_v her_o friend_n adonis_n which_o be_v kill_v do_v it_o not_o also_o seem_v that_o they_o will_v in_o the_o virgin_n mary_n &_o jesus_n christ_n her_o son_n renew_v &_o set_v up_o again_o all_o these_o old_a superstition_n neither_o more_o nor_o less_o than_o if_o that_o holy_a virgin_n be_v ceres_n venus_n or_o isis_n &_o jesus_n christ_n adonis_n or_o adovis_fw-la osiris_n for_o what_o difference_n be_v there_o between_o their_o divine_a service_n by_o that_o which_o they_o will_v cositerfeit_v the_o death_n &_o passion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o same_o which_o the_o ancient_a idolator_n do_v make_v in_o the_o honour_n of_o adonis_n and_o osiris_n for_o they_o do_v celebrate_v every_o year_n in_o the_o month_n of_o june_n the_o feast_n and_o in_o remembrance_n of_o that_o that_o adonis_n 8._o be_v kill_v and_o tear_v in_o piece_a of_o a_o wild_a boar_n they_o beat_v and_o strike_v themselves_o every_o year_n until_o the_o blood_n come_v forth_o and_o make_v great_a sorrwe_v and_o lamentation_n sh●●ow_v out_o the_o whole_a country_n and_o after_o that_o they_o have_v make_v a_o end_n of_o beat_v themselves_o &_o weep_a they_o bid_v that_o office_n after_o adonis_n even_o as_o after_o those_o that_o be_v dead_a afterwards_o the_o next_o day_n they_o do_v say_v that_o he_o be_v alive_a again_o and_o that_o they_o lift_v he_o up_o on_o high_a in_o the_o air_n and_o do_v shave_v their_o head_n even_o as_o the_o egyptian_n do_v when_o apis_n be_v dead_a among_o they_o and_o that_o they_o do_v celebrate_v the_o feast_n of_o osiris_n which_o be_v also_o call_v serapis_n for_o first_o 〈…〉_o of_o all_o the_o priest_n of_o that_o goddess_n lsis_n do_v shave_v their_o head_n and_o their_o beard_n and_o strike_v their_o breast_n and_o do_v lament_v even_o as_o isis_n lament_v when_o she_o have_v lose_v but_o little_a son_n osiris_n afterwards_o the_o child_n be_v bring_v again_o as_o though_o he_o have_v be_v find_v and_o then_o all_o the_o sorrow_n be_v change_v into_o joy_n therefore_o the_o poet_n cain_o call_v he_o osiris_n who_o be_v never_o search_v for_o enough_o 8_o for_o as_o lactantius_n say_v they_o do_v loose_v he_o always_o and_o always_o find_v he_o again_o theophilus_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o the_o same_o be_v that_o same_o idolatry_n which_o ezechiell_n rebuke_v speak_v of_o the_o woman_n which_o weep_v for_o thamus_n as_o saint_n hieromecrpound_v 14_o it_o or_o at_o the_o leastwise_o altogether_o the_o like_a hillarius_n now_o mark_v &_o consider_v all_o the_o trayve_fw-mi that_o our_o priest_n do_v hold_v upon_o good_a friday_n and_o thou_o will_v say_v that_o friday_n they_o have_v lose_v jesus_n christ_n or_o that_o he_o be_v dead_a and_o that_o they_o will_v bury_v he_o and_o afterward_v a_o day_n after_o that_o allel●ya_n caster_n be_v come_v allelnya_n who_o they_o have_v bury_v be_v raise_v again_o and_o there_o be_v no_o more_o question_n but_o to_o laugh_v and_o rejoice_v and_o to_o celebrate_v the_o feast_n which_o the_o paynim_n do_v call_v hilaria_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o joyful_a and_o tt_z at_o they_o do_v celebrate_v 〈◊〉_d it_o in_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o god_n kiss_v in_o laugh_v and_o rejoice_v and_o rehearse_v some_o good_a thing_n to_o laugh_v at_o as_z that_o 3._o holy_a father_n do_v in_o their_o sermon_n on_o that_o feast_n of_o caster_n when_o they_o do_v give_v the_o sweet_a nesegaye_n unto_o the_o lady_n of_o which_o custom_n be_v proceed_v that_o book_n of_o de_fw-fr risu_fw-la paschalt_fw-mi for_o to_o a_o waken_v their_o auditory_n and_o the_o better_a to_o sanetifie_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o god_n alleluya_n with_o who_o they_o do_v trumph_v all_o the_o year_n theoplulus_n they_o may_v well_o sake_n jesus_n christ_n for_o he_o may_v be_v lose_v and_o dead_a for_o they_o crcept_v they_o learn_v to_o know_v and_o honour_n he_o other_o wise_a than_o they_o do_v for_o he_o have_v not_o teach_v we_o to_o celebrate_v the_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n after_o the_o example_n of_o that_o same_o of_o adonis_n &_o osiris_n but_o have_v give_v unto_o we_o the_o manner_n &_o fashion_n in_o the_o holy_a supper_n such_o as_o it_o appertain_v unto_o he_o and_o christ_n his_o church_n the_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o follow_v and_o we_o need_v not_o to_o have_v so_o many_o ceremony_n and_o panish_a superstition_n hillarius_n for_o to_o make_v a_o end_n in_o paint_v and_o set_v floralet_fw-ge forth_o the_o caster_n we_o need_v to_o add_v no_o more_o but_o that_o floral_n the_o which_o they_o celebrate_v in_o that_o same_o time_n in_o the_o month_n of_o april_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o goddess_n flora_n with_o torch_n and_o light_n as_o at_o the_o feast_n of_o candlemas_n it_o appear_v by_o that_o that_o she_o herself_o answer_v unto_o ovid_n which_o bring_v it_o in_o speak_v so_o of_o her_o feast_n 5._o those_o light_n which_o serve_v to_o their_o use_n in_o time_n full_a long_a ago_o unto_o the_o very_a like_o use_n serve_v our_o present_a time_n also_o and_o they_o celebrate_v the_o same_o feast_n for_o to_o keep_v the_o good_n &_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n as_o the_o cereales_fw-la both_o of_o they_o in_o that_o same_o month_n notwithstanding_o that_o durand_n place_v they_o in_o the_o cereales_fw-la month_n of_o february_n the_o better_a to_o agree_v with_o the_o feast_n of_o candlemas_n let_v we_o now_o lay_v together_o all_o those_o piece_n and_o let_v we_o consider_v how_o the_o devil_n mock_v god_n the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o all_o the_o christian_a people_n and_o how_o of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n mary_n he_o be_v enforce_v not_o only_o to_o make_v one_o idol_n but_o many_o and_o have_v induce_v and_o persuade_v that_o christian_n without_o that_o they_o have_v any_o regard_n to_o make_v she_o a_o juno_n februa_n venus_n ceres_n proserpina_n &_o flora._n for_o we_o do_v honour_n she_o after_o the_o same_o sort_n or_o rather_o that_o devil_n under_o the_o title_n of_o she_o who_o he_o have_v take_v for_o to_o cover_v &_o bioe_v himself_o in_o stcede_v of_o those_o who_o i_o have_v but_o now_o name_v to_o what_o end_n do_v these_o torch_n &_o holy_a candle_n serve_v &_o all_o your_o procession_n 47._o eusebius_n pen_n carry_v they_o for_o to_o represent_v by_o they_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gaspell_n that_o which_o jesus_n christ_n have_v carry_v &_o bear_v which_o be_v that_o true_a light_n of_o that_o world_n for_o to_o illuminate_v &_o lighten_v the_o poor_a gentle_n and_o idolater_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o people_n israel_n according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o isaiah_n and_o of_o simeon_n theophilus_n but_o must_v we_o present_v he_o with_o torche_v 14_o candle_n be_v not_o that_o rather_o the_o office_n of_o the_o priest_n to_o light_v the_o candle_n lamp_n and_o torch_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o light_n of_o our_o foot_n lighten_v the_o blind_a give_v wise_a doine_v unto_o the_o little_a one_o and_o ignorant_a through_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gaspell_n and_o to_o set_v it_o upon_o a_o candlestick_n &_o 16_o upon_o the_o table_n for_o to_o give_v light_n unto_o all_o those_o which_o be_v in_o that_o house_n of_o god_n not_o for_o to_o put_v it_o under_o the_o table_n and_o under_o a_o bushel_n and_o to_o fill_v the_o people_n eye_n and_o all_o the_o church_n of_o god_n with_o smoke_n and_o darkness_n for_o to_o testify_v and_o witness_v that_o they_o be_v blind_a leader_n of_o the_o blind_a hillarius_n they_o shall_v have_v more_o reason_n if_o they_o go_v a_o procession_n in_o the_o night_n as_o the_o paynim_n do_v and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o they_o carry_v those_o torch_n &_o candle_n light_v for_o to_o serve_v they_o for_o purification_n &_o drive_v away_o the_o evil_n from_o the_o city_n and_o from_o their_o house_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o the_o paynim_n do_v 1._o theophilus_n if_o they_o will_v deny_v it_o they_o will_v be_v banquish_v of_o the_o contrary_a as_o liar_n aswell_o by_o the_o prayer_n and_o blessing_n the_o which_o they_o bse_v for_o to_o bless_v the_o taper_n and_o torch_n the_o day_n of_o the_o feast_n of_o candlemas_n as_o of_o that_o that_o they_o use_v the_o saturday_n before_o caster_n or_o upon_o caster_n even_o for_o to_o bless_v the_o fire_n and_o the_o pascal_n taper_n park_n than_o first_o of_o all_o that_o which_o they_o
sing_v the_o day_n of_o the_o feast_n of_o candlemas_n as_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o pissell_n not_o that_o i_o will_v recite_v word_n for_o word_n all_o their_o blessing_n but_o only_o the_o principal_a point_n for_o to_o prove_v our_o meaning_n &_o by_o the_o which_o thou_o may_v judge_v of_o the_o rest_n they_o sing_v unto_o god_n we_o huble_o beseech_v thou_o that_o through_o the_o muecation_n of_o thy_o holy_a name_n and_o by_o the_o intercession_n of_o the_o holy_a virgin_n mary_n the_o mother_n of_o thy_o son_n who_o feast_n this_o day_n we_o devoute_o celebrate_v &_o by_o the_o prayer_n of_o all_o thy_o saint_n that_o it_o will_v please_v thou_o to_o bless_v and_o sanctify_v these_o candle_n for_o the_o use_n of_o man_n and_o the_o health_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v it_o in_o the_o earth_n or_o in_o the_o water_n behold_v their_o own_o proper_a word_n rehearse_v true_o word_n for_o word_n where_o have_v etc_n they_o find_v that_o the_o candle_n do_v serve_v for_o the_o health_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o that_o they_o have_v any_o other_o use_n theu_o for_o to_o give_v light_n unto_o the_o corporal_a eye_n but_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o paynim_n but_o by_o and_o afferwards_o they_o do_v say_v worse_o park_n then_o their_o word_n oh_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n we_o humble_o beseech_v thou_o to_o bless_v this_o creature_n of_o war_n and_o shed_v soorth_o in_o the_o same_o thy_o heavenly_a blessing_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a cross_n to_o the_o end_n that_o as_o thou_o have_v give_v it_o unto_o makinde_n for_o to_o put_v &_o drive_v away_o the_o darkness_n it_o may_v recelue_v such_o force_n and_o benediction_n by_o the_o sign_n of_o thy_o holy_a um_o cross_n in_o what_o place_n soever_o it_o shall_v be_v light_v or_o set_v that_o that_o wicked_a devil_n may_v flee_v and_o tremble_v and_o avoid_v altogether_o amaze_v and_o make_v a_o fray_v with_o all_o his_o minister_n from_o those_o habitation_n and_o that_o he_o presume_v no_o more_o to_o trouble_v those_o which_o do_v serve_v god_n and_o by_o and_o by_o after_o there_o be_v yet_o more_o ido_n bless_v thou_o thou_o creature_n of_o war_n in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n to_o the_o end_n thou_o may_v be_v the_o extermination_n and_o drive_v away_o of_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o complise_n what_o mockery_n be_v this_o must_v the_o name_n of_o god_o be_v so_o abuse_v in_o charm_n and_o witchcraft_n for_o wherein_o do_v these_o benediction_n and_o blessing_n differ_v from_o the_o charm_n and_o coniuratyon_n of_o sorcerer_n and_o witch_n aswell_o as_o the_o exorcism_n and_o adjuration_n of_o their_o holy_a water_n and_o salt_n which_o they_o put_v into_o it_o what_o do_v that_o exorcisine_n and_o adjuration_n signiste_n i_o exercise_v and_o adjure_v thou_o thou_o creature_n of_o salt_n by_o the_o live_a deum_fw-la god_o by_o the_o true_a deum_fw-la god_o by_o the_o holy_a temple_n god_o by_o the_o god_o which_o comnaund_v that_o thou_o shall_v be_v put_v into_o the_o water_n by_o the_o prophet_n eliseus_n for_o to_o heal_v the_o sterility_n and_o barrenness_n of_o the_o water_n to_o the_o end_n thou_o be_v make_v a_o adiured_a salt_n to_o the_o health_n of_o they_o that_o believe_v to_o the_o end_n that_o thou_o may_v be_v unto_o all_o those_o which_o will_v take_v thou_o health_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o that_o all_o fantasy_n malice_n dsuhtyle_n craft_n of_o the_o devil_n may_v avoid_v and_o depart_v from_o the_o place_n where_o thou_o shall_v be_v shed_v abrcade_fw-mi and_o all_o unclean_a spirit_n adjure_v by_o he_o which_o shall_v judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o world_n with_o fire_n hillarius_n thou_o will_v make_v we_o here_o by_o and_o by_o holy_a water_n sith_o that_o thou_o have_v make_v the_o exorcisine_n sing_v now_o the_o oremus_fw-la theophilus_n there_o be_v no_o less_o blasphemic_n in_o it_o but_o sith_o that_o thou_o will_v have_v it_o thou_o shall_v oh_o eternal_a god_n altogether_o mighty_a we_o humble_o innocate_v and_o call_v upon_o thy_o infinite_a clemency_n that_o it_o will_v please_v thou_o to_o bless_v †_o and_o sanctify_v †_o this_o creature_n of_o salt_n the_o which_o thou_o have_v give_v for_o the_o use_n of_o mankind_n to_o the_o end_n that_o it_o may_v be_v unto_o all_o those_o which_o will_v take_v it_o health_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o that_o all_o that_o which_o be_v touch_v with_o the_o same_o or_o sprinkle_v shall_v be_v without_o any_o filth_n and_o all_o the_o assault_n and_o cembat_n of_o the_o spiritual_a enemy_n hillarius_n i_o have_v hear_v many_o priess_n who_o in_o steed_n to_o say_v careatomni_fw-la immundicia_fw-la do_v say_v careat_fw-la omni_fw-la mundicia_fw-la but_o they_o do_v use_v the_o figure_n which_o the_o gramarian_n do_v call_v apheresis_n or_o for_o to_o speak_v better_a the_o figure_n call_v the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o grammar_n i_o do_v very_o think_v that_o all_o that_o which_o they_o sprinkle_v abide_v well_o according_a to_o the_o prayer_n that_o they_o make_v without_o cleanness_n wherefore_o those_o who_o they_o do_v sprinkle_v when_o they_o make_v their_o great_a asperge_n i_o may_v very_o well_o say_v as_o valentinian_n say_v who_o be_v the_o chief_a captain_n in_o the_o court_n of_o juhan_n the_o apostate_n but_o yet_o nevertheless_o a_o good_a christian_a and_o afterwards_o choose_a emperor_n thomas_n what_o say_v he_o hillarius_n at_o a_o certain_a time_n as_o lulian_n enter_v into_o the_o temple_n of_o fortune_n and_o that_o on_o both_o the_o side_n of_o the_o door_n the_o minister_n and_o priest_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v who_o accord_v as_o they_o make_v man_n to_o understand_v through_o that_o sprinkle_v of_o that_o water_n do_v purge_v those_o that_o do_v enter_v in_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o cur_n priest_n do_v yet_o at_o this_o day_n to_o those_o which_o do_v enter_v or_o go_v forth_o of_o the_o church_n valentinian_n who_o do_v go_v before_o lulian_n the_o prince_n espy_v a_o drop_n of_o that_o water_n which_o have_v be_v shed_v upon_o his_o cloak_n for_o which_o he_o be_v very_o angry_a insomuch_o that_o he_o give_v a_o priest_n &_o minister_n of_o the_o temple_n diogenes_n a_o great_a stroke_n with_o his_o fist_n say_v thou_o have_v defile_v i_o &_o not_o purge_v i_o he_o have_v as_o much_o good_a reason_n as_o diogenes_n who_o at_o a_o certain_a time_n be_v enter_v into_o a_o filthy_a &_o stink_a bath_n say_v those_o which_o do_v bathe_v and_o wash_v themselves_o here_o where_o do_v they_o wash_v they_o let_v thereby_o to_o understand_v that_o those_o which_o bathe_v and_o wash_v they_o in_o those_o bath_n come_v forth_o more_o filthy_a than_o they_o be_v before_o they_o enter_v and_o that_o they_o have_v more_o need_n to_o be_v wash_v then_o before_o for_o they_o have_v gather_v nothing_o but_o filthiness_n but_o this_o apothegme_n and_o sentence_n never_o agree_v better_a than_o with_o our_o priest_n which_o defile_v all_o those_o which_o go_v unto_o they_o how_o clean_o soever_o they_o be_v but_o thou_o halt_v yet_o adjure_v and_o conjure_v but_o the_o salt_n yet_o remain_v the_o water_n theophilus_n they_o do_v blaspheme_v yet_o moreover_o for_o change_v they_o pray_v that_o it_o may_v be_v adjure_v and_o conjure_v for_o to_o drive_v away_o all_o the_o power_n of_o the_o enemy_n and_o to_o tear_v and_o pluck_v up_o the_o enemy_n themselves_o with_o all_o his_o apostate_n angel_n and_o for_o to_o drwe_v away_o the_o devil_n and_o disease_n and_o that_o all_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v spricknele_v with_o it_o either_o in_o the_o house_n or_o in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o faithful_a shall_v be_v without_o spot_n or_o hurt_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o pestilence_n do_v not_o remain_v and_o rest_v there_o nor_o the_o infectious_a wind_n nor_o air_n that_o all_o unclean_a spirit_n and_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o venomous_a serpent_n and_o all_o the_o assault_n and_o ambush_n of_o the_o evemye_n and_o all_o evil_a be_v altogether_o drive_v away_o to_o conclude_v they_o require_v that_o it_o may_v do_v all_o thing_n and_o so_o by_o that_o mean_v we_o shall_v have_v no_o more_o need_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o candle_n the_o ware_n the_o salt_n and_o the_o water_n will_v do_v all_o eusebius_n you_o speak_v very_a evil_n for_o you_o may_v well_o perceive_v how_o they_o yraye_v unto_o god_n that_o he_o will_v give_v unto_o they_o that_o virtue_n by_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n who_o they_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n theophilus_n if_o they_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o such_o a_o one_o what_o need_n have_v they_o then_o of_o war_n salt_n and_o water_n for_o to_o obtain_v of_o he_o the_o good_n which_o be_v
doctor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v of_o our_o side_n or_o on_o you_o and_o therefore_o i_o pray_v thou_o eusebius_n that_o thou_o do_v pursue_v thine_o enterprise_n and_o that_o thou_o show_v forth_o so_o good_a place_n that_o they_o can_v be_v easy_o pluck_v from_o thy_o hand_n as_o they_o have_v do_v those_o which_o thou_o have_v already_o take_v of_o saint_n ambrose_n eusebius_n if_o i_o will_v display_v and_o show_v forth_o all_o that_o that_o i_o may_v allege_v aswell_o of_o the_o new_a and_o late_a doctor_n as_o of_o the_o aun●ient_a i_o shall_v aswell_o set_v they_o a_o work_n as_o hillarius_n do_v vaunt_v himself_o of_o late_a to_o have_v set_v i_o on_o work_n but_o i_o have_v not_o determine_v to_o allege_v other_o but_o of_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o of_o those_o which_o be_v of_o more_o great_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o which_o i_o will_v plain_o prove_v that_o that_o which_o we_o do_v now_o in_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o dead_a descend_v from_o the_o primative_a church_n and_o from_o the_o eusebius_n tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o if_o i_o will_v bring_v forth_o the_o doctor_n of_o late_a day_n they_o will_v by_o and_o by_o reicete_n and_o despise_v their_o authority_n and_o will_v make_v none_o account_v of_o it_o but_o when_o i_o shall_v have_v prove_v that_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v on_o our_o side_n i_o shall_v by_o and_o by_o allow_v and_o confirm_v the_o authority_n and_o witness_n of_o the_o late_a doctor_n and_o will_v more_o easy_o stop_v their_o mouth_n except_o they_o be_v so_o past_a shame_n that_o they_o care_v leprove_v and_o condemn_v all_o the_o holy_a man_n and_o pillar_n of_o the_o church_n which_o have_v shore_v and_o hold_v it_o up_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v not_o so_o many_o good_a man_n and_o so_o wise_a and_o learned_a as_o they_o be_v theophilus_n thou_o shall_v not_o find_v we_o so_o unreasonable_a put_v forth_o thy_o case_n afterward_o judge_n whether_o we_o have_v read_v and_o understand_v those_o of_o who_o you_o do_v glory_n so_o much_o in_o thomas_n i_o have_v hear_v thou_o speak_v friend_n fusebius_n of_o augustin_n saint_n augustine_n namely_o among_o other_o and_o i_o be_o of_o a_o opinion_n that_o he_o be_v the_o chief_a by_o who_o thou_o may_v better_o fight_v then_o by_o any_o other_o if_o thou_o can_v find_v in_o he_o a_o strong_a staff_n for_o to_o defend_v thou_o and_o to_o make_v war_n against_o they_o for_o i_o have_v understand_v that_o there_o be_v none_o among_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n which_o will_v serve_v they_o better_o for_o to_o prove_v their_o sect_n than_o he_o wherefore_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o if_o thou_o can_v do_v so_o much_o that_o thou_o can_v prove_v that_o he_o be_v contrary_a unto_o they_o they_o shall_v receive_v a_o great_a overthrow_n and_o thou_o shall_v make_v a_o great_a breach_n in_o their_o castle_n for_o if_o he_o so_o who_o they_o have_v their_o recourse_n be_v their_o enemy_n they_o shall_v have_v other_o which_o will_v rise_v against_o they_o eusebius_n but_o so_o well_o assure_v thereof_o as_o thou_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v now_o day_n and_o to_o the_o end_n thou_o shall_v not_o think_v that_o there_o be_v but_o vain_a word_n in_o my_o case_n i_o will_v show_v unto_o they_o the_o experience_n what_o do_v those_o word_n signify_v which_o be_v write_v in_o his_o encheridion_n which_o be_v also_o recite_v in_o you_o decrets_n ne●ue_n and_o in_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n say_v we_o must_v not_o deny_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v comfort_v thorewe_v the_o piety_n and_o devotion_n of_o their_o friend_n that_o be_v alive_a when_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o a_o mediator_n be_v offer_v for_o they_o or_o that_o alm_n be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n but_o those_o thing_n do_v profit_v those_o who_o have_v merit_v they_o during_o this_o life_n dead_a to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o may_v afterward_o profit_v they_o for_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a manner_n of_o live_v which_o be_v not_o so_o good_a but_o that_o it_o require_v those_o thing_n after_o death_n nor_o so_o evil_a but_o that_o after_o the_o same_o they_o may_v profit_v he_o but_o there_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n some_o kind_n of_o life_n so_o good_a that_o it_o require_v not_o the_o same_o and_o again_o some_o so_o evil_a that_o life_n it_o can_v have_v aid_n by_o those_o thing_n after_o that_o this_o life_n shall_v be_v end_v and_o therefore_o he_o get_v here_o all_o the_o merit_n by_o which_o any_o may_v be_v relieve_v or_o gréeve_v after_o this_o life_n yet_o nevertheless_o there_o be_v none_o which_o hope_v to_o be_v able_a to_o merit_v towards_o god_o when_o he_o shall_v be_v dead_a whereof_o he_o have_v not_o here_o make_v any_o accempt_n this_o then_o which_o the_o church_n have_v frequent_v for_o to_o praise_v the_o dead_a be_v not_o contrary_a unto_o that_o sentence_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o say_v we_o shall_v all_o be_v bring_v before_o the_o 10_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n that_o every_o man_n may_v receive_v the_o work_n of_o his_o body_n according_a to_o that_o he_o have_v do_v whether_o it_o he_o good_a or_o bad_a for_o every_o one_o acquire_v and_o get_v that_o merit_n when_o he_o live_v in_o this_o body_n that_o those_o thing_n may_v profit_v he_o for_o they_o profit_v not_o all_o man_n and_o wherefore_o do_v they_o not_o profit_v all_o man_n but_o because_o of_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o life_n the_o which_o every_o one_o have_v lead_v in_o his_o body_n then_o when_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v it_o of_o the_o altar_n or_o of_o alm_n deed_n what_o soever_o they_o be_v they_o be_v offer_v for_o all_o the_o dead_a which_o have_v be_v baptize_v those_o be_v give_v of_o thanks_n for_o those_o which_o have_v be_v very_o good_a and_o propitiation_n for_o those_o which_o have_v not_o be_v very_o evil_a for_o to_o make_v god_n favourable_a unto_o they_o but_o for_o the_o most_o wicked_a and_o evil_a although_o that_o there_o be_v not_o aid_n and_o help_n for_o the_o dead_a yet_o nevertheless_o those_o be_v certain_a consolation_n for_o the_o live_n but_o they_o do_v profit_v those_o that_o they_o do_v profit_n either_o to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o may_v have_v full_a remission_n and_o forgiveness_n or_o without_o all_o ●eubt_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o damnation_n may_v be_v more_o tolerable_a and_o easy_a to_o bear_v thomas_n have_v saint_n augustine_n write_v that_o ●usebius_fw-la do_v thou_o think_v i_o so_o much_o a_o fool_n that_o &_o will_v declare_v it_o otherwise_o i_o warrant_v you_o they_o will_v not_o let_v i_o pass_v so_o if_o they_o may_v say_v the_o contrary_n but_o i_o be_o certain_a they_o dare_v not_o do_v it_o and_o though_o they_o will_v they_o can_v for_o the_o book_n be_v of_o faith_n and_o credit_n thomas_n those_o word_n be_v very_o clear_a not_o only_o for_o to_o prove_v the_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a but_o also_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o ●ulter_n eusebius_n one_o can_v find_v a_o thing_n more_o cléere_a for_o it_o open_v so_o plain_o all_o the_o matter_n particular_o and_o go_v before_o the_o objection_n &_o replying_n which_o those_o that_o do_v speak_v against_o it_o may_v make_v for_o it_o divide_v the_o diverse_a manner_n to_o live_v and_o diverse_a merit_n of_o man_n and_o give_v estimantus_fw-la to_o understand_v that_o it_o must_v be_v he_o which_o will_v that_o such_o good_a deed_n shall_v be_v profitable_a unto_o he_o after_o his_o death_n shall_v be_v here_o conduct_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o they_o may_v profit_v he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o it_o must_v be_v that_o he_o die_v confess_v and_o repentant_a and_o he_o speak_v not_o only_o this_o in_o this_o place_n but_o in_o many_o other_o like_a amongst_o which_o he_o add_v yet_o this_o that_o notwithstanding_o that_o that_o which_o we_o do_v for_o the_o dead_a profit_v not_o all_o those_o for_o who_o we_o do_v they_o yet_o nevertheless_o because_o we_o do_v not_o know_v to_o who_o it_o profit_v we_o must_v do_v they_o to_o all_o y_fw-mi we_o leave_v none_o out_o for_o it_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n better_o that_o those_o to_o who_o it_o can_v neither_o profit_n nor_o hurt_n shall_v have_v more_o than_o they_o need_v then_o to_o want_v any_o thing_n unto_o those_o which_o have_v need_v and_o in_o the_o same_o book_n he_o say_v moreover_o we_o do_v read_v in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n that_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v for_o the_o dead_a but_o when_o one_o read_v they_o not_o in_o the_o ancient_a scripture_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v not_o little_a the_o which_o have_v
as_o we_o do_v drive_v out_o a_o pin_n with_o one_o other_o pin_n but_o they_o be_v not_o much_o profitable_a unto_o the_o church_n theophilus_n after_o that_o manner_n come_v the_o custom_n to_o make_v commemoration_n of_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a assemble_v and_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o supper_n over_o and_o beside_o the_o cause_n before_o allege_a and_o afterwards_o by_o little_a and_o little_a the_o superstition_n have_v begin_v and_o be_v augment_v unto_o this_o which_o we_o do_v now_o see_v it_o we_o have_v no_o example_n dead_a in_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o the_o apostle_n have_v do_v any_o thing_n of_o this_o about_o the_o time_n of_o tertulian_n and_o of_o cyprian_a there_o be_v no_o question_n neither_o of_o purgatory_n nor_o of_o prayer_n nor_o offering_n for_o to_o deliver_v the_o soul_n but_o such_o which_o we_o have_v see_v about_o the_o time_n of_o ambrose_n and_o augustine_n the_o superstition_n do_v begin_v very_o much_o to_o take_v root_n and_o to_o increase_v insomuch_o that_o in_o steed_n of_o simple_a commemoration_n give_v of_o thank_n and_o exhortation_n which_o they_o make_v in_o celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o dead_a they_o have_v already_o begin_v to_o dispute_v that_o the_o prayer_n do_v profit_v they_o and_o that_o the_o purgatory_n question_n of_o purgatory_n be_v already_o begin_v to_o be_v stir_v up_o for_o it_o be_v very_o easy_a for_o man_n yea_o the_o most_o sage_a and_o wise_a to_o fall_v into_o superstition_n because_o that_o it_o be_v natural_a unto_o we_o and_o chief_o about_o the_o dead_a by_o reason_n of_o a_o affection_n and_o love_n that_o we_o do_v bear_v unto_o our_o parent_n and_o friend_n who_o we_o can_v forget_v although_o they_o be_v absent_a from_o we_o but_o we_o do_v abide_v and_o continue_v always_o affection_a towards_o they_o as_o though_o we_o may_v great_o aid_v they_o yea_o many_o time_n more_o after_o they_o be_v dead_a then_o before_o when_o they_o be_v alive_a from_o thence_o it_o come_v that_o we_o be_v so_o much_o incline_v to_o invent_v and_o receive_v every_o thing_n that_o we_o think_v may_v serve_v they_o and_o although_o in_o deed_n it_o serve_v they_o to_o no_o end_n yet_o nevertheless_o we_o can_v refrain_v ourselves_o because_o that_o we_o think_v that_o we_o do_v feel_v comfort_n and_o satisfaction_n to_o our_o affection_n iudgeinge_v the_o affection_n of_o the_o dead_a after_o our_o own_o our_o deal_n be_v fowarde_n they_o as_o towards_o god_n what_o be_v the_o original_n and_o begin_v of_o all_o idolatry_n but_o our_o foolish_a fantasse_fw-la and_o affection_n by_o the_o which_o we_o do_v measure_n god_n think_v that_o idolatry_n he_o take_v pleasure_n to_o that_o that_o please_v we_o wherefore_o we_o serve_v he_o not_o after_o his_o will_n but_o after_o we_o for_o in_o make_v feast_n in_o repose_v ourselves_o be_v apparel_v with_o goodly_a robe_n and_o gown_n make_v great_a cheer_n hear_v goodly_a singinge_n and_o melody_n walk_a about_o and_o pass_v the_o time_n in_o go_v a_o procession_n w●e_o think_v that_o we_o do_v serve_v god_n well_o but_o what_o service_n do_v w●e_v unto_o he_o do_v we_o not_o rather_o serve_v ourselves_o and_o our_o affection_n make_v unto_o we_o a_o god_n altogether_o like_a unto_o ourselves_o delight_a ourselves_o in_o the_o like_a vanity_n as_o much_o be_v happen_v unto_o we_o about_o the_o dead_a dead_a hillarius_n when_o a_o man_n be_v angry_a yet_o it_o do_v he_o much_o good_a to_o revenge_v himself_o upon_o some_o one_o for_o to_o make_v he_o pass_v away_o his_o sorrow_n and_o anger_n although_o he_o do_v receive_v no_o great_a profit_n even_o so_o when_o a_o man_n be_v in_o sorrow_n and_o beavines_n for_o the_o death_n of_o his_o friend_n he_o must_v have_v some_o solace_n and_o comfort_n for_o to_o comfort_v his_o sorrow_n &_o heaviness_n and_o thereof_o it_o come_v that_o the_o woman_n that_o love_v well_o her_o husband_n or_o the_o mother_n her_o child_n oftentimes_o can_v refrain_v to_o kiss_v they_o after_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v dead_a or_o to_o embrace_v they_o &_o some_o time_n with_o more_o great_a affection_n than_o ever_o she_o do_v during_o the_o time_n that_o he_o live_v but_o wheretoo_o profit_v all_o that_o either_o to_o the_o quick_a or_o dead_a thomas_n nothing_o at_o all_o hillarius_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o y_fw-mi do_v great_a good_a unto_o she_o that_o do_v it_o and_o sh●e_v be_v so_o affection_a theophilus_n of_o 15_o such_o affection_n come_v in_o like_a manner_n the_o beginning_n to_o make_v image_n as_o it_o show_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n yea_o almost_o the_o begin_n of_o all_o idolatry_n as_o all_o y_fw-mi ancient_a father_n do_v witness_n especial_o lactantius_n &_o eusebius_n 8_o for_o the_o man_n for_o the_o affection_n that_o they_o do_v bear_v unto_o the_o dead_a to_o comfort_v the_o sorrow_n that_o they_o have_v &_o to_o remember_v they_o and_o beside_o to_o honour_v they_o they_o make_v image_n and_o set_v up_o sumptuous_a sepulcher_n in_o their_o honour_n afterwards_o they_o begin_v to_o build_v temple_n and_o chapel_n hard_a by_o their_o grave_n and_o to_o set_v therein_o their_o image_n afterwards_o in_o success_n of_o time_n all_o be_v convert_v and_o change_v into_o great_a superstition_n and_o idolatry_n and_o even_o as_o it_o begin_v among_o the_o paynim_n so_o be_v it_o enter_v among_o the_o christian_n christi●is_n by_o occasion_n of_o the_o sepulcher_n of_o the_o martyr_n for_o they_o have_v begin_v to_o make_v there_o their_o ecclesiastical_a assembly_n to_o go_v thither_o to_o watch_v and_o pray_v unto_o god_n and_o to_o celebrate_v the_o supper_n afterward_o they_o have_v build_v chapel_n and_o temple_n and_o have_v ordain_v annual_a feast_n and_o after_o that_o those_o foundation_n be_v once_o set_v up_o which_o be_v yet_o some_o thing_n tolerable_a the_o thing_n be_v afterwards_o pervert_v insomuch_o that_o in_o steed_n of_o the_o candle_n that_o they_o carry_v for_o to_o watch_v all_o the_o night_n they_o 〈◊〉_d begin_v to_o offer_v they_o to_o the_o saint_n and_o to_o their_o image_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o prayer_n y_fw-fr be_v make_v unto_o god_n they_o have_v begin_v to_o address_v &_o direct_v they_o unto_o they_o in_o strede_n of_o that_o supper_n s●mes_n y_fw-fr they_o celebrate_v in_o you_o name_n of_o a'n_z death_n &_o passion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n they_o have_v also_o begin_v to_o ado_n the_o rememoration_n of_o y_fw-es saint_n &_o saint_n and_o theroff_o come_v that_o commemorantes_fw-la which_o be_v in_o you_o even_o of_o the_o mass_n in_o which_o they_o do_v make_v comm●morites_n ●●p●●sse_a remembrance_n of_o some_o saint_n &_o saint_n and_o afterward_o by_o little_a &_o little_a in_o strede_n of_o y_fw-es simple_a commmoration_n which_o be_v do_v of_o y_fw-es saint_n &_o sancte_n they_o have_v begin_v to_o give_v unto_o every_o one_o of_o 〈◊〉_d his_o mass_n all_o whelly_a insomuch_o y_fw-es there_o be_v neither_o saint_n nor_o saint_n but_o have_v one_o &_o that_o they_o do_v call_v upon_o it_o in_o steed_n of_o god_n &_o unto_o who_o you_o priest_n have_v not_o give_v some_o occupation_n &_o office_n for_o to_o help_v &_o aid_n god_n in_o so_o many_o affair_n and_o after_o y_fw-fr sathan_n have_v so_o well_o augment_v his_o stuff_n under_o y_fw-es title_n of_o martyr_n &_o of_o their_o cemmemoration_n to_o you_o end_n y_fw-es nothing_o shall_v remain_v but_o you_o it_o shall_v be_v full_a of_o idolatry_n &_o superstition_n he_o have_v also_o lound_v in_o mean_n to_o make_v mé_fw-fr muse_n after_o you_o be_v dead_a after_o a_o other_o manner_n for_o to_o make_v they_o all_o to_o be_v worship_v as_o saint_n he_o can_v not_o also_o he_o know_v very_o well_o y_fw-fr after_o the_o damn_v man_n will_v not_o much_o travalic_fw-mi nor_o bestow_v any_o cost_n and_o therefore_o he_o have_v sound_v a_o three_o order_n hillarius_n there_o do_v lack_n but_o one_o but_o a'n_z the_fw-mi shall_v be_v as_o many_o as_o of_o y_fw-fr order_n dead_a of_o the_o beggar_n but_o they_o have_v it_o already_o for_o you_o limb_n be_v for_o a'n_z four_o order_n theophilus_n therefore_o have_v he_o begin_v in_o a_o luckey_n hour_n you_o a_o since_o y_fw-es time_n of_o augustin_n to_o forge_v the_o purgatory_n although_o a'n_z they_o it_o be_v not_o receive_v nor_o allow_v as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o they_o dispute_v only_o as_o of_o a_o opinion_n which_o have_v some_o colour_n &_o show_v for_o although_o a'n_z s._n augustin_n move_v y_fw-mi question_n &_o touch_v some_o thing_n in_o matter_n 〈…〉_o yet_o nevertheless_o he_o have_v determine_v or_o conclude_v nothing_o for_o certain_a but_o rather_o to_o you_o contrary_n he_o have_v write_v y_fw-fr the_fw-mi be_v some_o which_o do_v think_v that_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a fire_n of_o
one_o shall_v affirm_v nothing_o and_o allege_v the_o sentence_n of_o seneca_n say_v thou_o ought_v to_o affirm_v nothing_o of_o uncertain_a thing_n but_o keep_v thy_o judgement_n inoerteyne_a also_o tertulian_n propound_v not_o the_o same_o but_o as_o a_o advice_n not_o as_o a_o biffinitive_a sentence_n and_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n yet_o nevertheless_o although_o that_o he_o say_v it_o that_o sentence_n serve_v i_o for_o to_o show_v unto_o thou_o that_o it_o be_v no_o question_n in_o tertulians_n time_n of_o purgatory_n after_o the_o manner_n as_o you_o have_v take_v it_o for_o he_o put_v but_o one_o place_n indifferent_o for_o all_o the_o elect_a and_o child_n of_o abraham_n which_o have_v be_v and_o shall_v be_v until_o the_o latter_a resurrection_n it_o well_o appear_v that_o he_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o they_o be_v not_o yet_o in_o the_o celestial_a habitation_n and_o chief_a felicity_n but_o yet_o nevertheless_o he_o assign_v unto_o they_o abraham_n bosom_n in_o which_o all_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a do_v rest_v general_o without_o put_v any_o difference_n between_o those_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o we_o nor_o make_v mention_n of_o pain_n nor_o any_o purgatory_n in_o like_a manner_n ireneus_fw-la who_o be_v next_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o of_o a_o opinion_n very_o much_o contrary_a and_o differ_v for_o valentma_fw-la notwithstanding_o that_o he_o assign_v unto_o the_o soul_n of_o all_o the_o disciple_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o true_a faithful_a a_o invisible_a place_n which_o be_v appoint_v and_o determine_v for_o they_o of_o god_n in_o which_o they_o shall_v continue_v and_o abide_v until_o the_o resurrection_n the_o which_o they_o do_v look_v for_o yet_o nevertheless_o he_o assign_v but_o one_o place_n for_o all_o the_o christian_n the_o which_o he_o call_v disciple_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o be_v say_v not_o that_o some_o shall_v be_v in_o pain_n and_o other_o some_o at_o rest_n but_o he_o put_v they_o there_o upon_o a_o condition_n and_o he_o assign_v unto_o all_o no_o other_o pain_n but_o the_o tarry_v and_o look_v for_o the_o resurrection_n say_v that_o the_o disciple_n be_v not_o above_o the_o master_n and_o that_o as_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o by_o and_o by_o rise_v after_o his_o death_n but_o tarry_v the_o time_n that_o be_v appoint_v he_o of_o god_n his_o father_n so_o must_v his_o disciple_n tarry_v for_o they_o as_o he_o have_v ordain_v they_o it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o in_o the_o book_n which_o 1._o be_v attribute_v unto_o saint_n clement_n it_o seem_v that_o he_o will_v put_v a_o certain_a kind_n of_o purgatory_n but_o although_o the_o book_n be_v of_o great_a authority_n yet_o nevertheless_o it_o will_v serve_v for_o nothing_o for_o the_o priest_n purgatory_n for_o although_o that_o he_o put_v a_o certain_a difference_n between_o the_o most_o perfect_a servant_n of_o god_n and_o the_o other_o which_o have_v not_o nor_o can_v not_o entyrelye_o accomplish_v the_o rule_n of_o righteousness_n but_o have_v yet_o some_o malice_n remain_v in_o their_o flesh_n yet_o he_o assign_v no_o pain_n unto_o those_o although_o that_o he_o think_v that_o the_o other_o be_v in_o more_o great_a glory_n but_o say_v that_o their_o soul_n be_v keep_v in_o goodly_a pleasant_a and_o joyful_a regyon_n and_o country_n that_o in_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a when_o they_o shall_v have_v receive_v their_o body_n and_o that_o they_o re_o resolution_n shall_v be_v purge_v they_o may_v come_v unto_o eternal_a life_n behold_v his_o own_o word_n the_o which_o he_o recite_v as_o speak_v of_o saint_n peter_n unto_o saint_n clement_n but_o there_o be_v no_o appearance_n that_o saint_n peter_n have_v hold_v those_o word_n which_o be_v attribute_v to_o he_o in_o that_o book_n nor_o that_o saint_n clement_n have_v clement_n write_v they_o although_o that_o the_o book_n be_v entitle_v in_o his_o name_n for_o how_o many_o proposition_n be_v there_o altogether_o contrary_a unto_o the_o doctrine_n of_o saint_n peter_n and_o of_o all_o the_o apostle_n but_o put_v the_o case_n that_o the_o book_n be_v very_o awcient_a and_o of_o the_o author_n to_o who_o they_o attribute_v it_o if_o it_o be_v not_o canonize_v nor_o of_o the_o apostolical_a authority_n and_o which_o be_v more_o he_o put_v no_o purgatory_n in_o which_o there_o be_v pame_z and_o torment_v and_o when_o thou_o will_v conclude_v by_o those_o word_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v some_o manner_n of_o purgatory_n i_o will_v vanquish_v and_o overcome_v thou_o by_o himself_o either_o that_o there_o be_v none_o or_o else_o that_o it_o be_v for_o none_o all_o man_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o man_n so_o holy_a but_o that_o he_o must_v be_v purge_v in_o the_o same_o for_o there_o be_v never_o any_o so_o just_a and_o righteous_a which_o have_v fulfil_v and_o perfect_v the_o rule_n of_o righteousness_n which_o have_v be_v without_o sin_n &_o which_o have_v not_o pray_v with_o all_o the_o saint_n accord_v to_o the_o witness_n of_o david_n for_o his_o unquitye_n 32._o and_o say_v pardon_v our_o sin_n and_o in_o who_o one_o can_v not_o find_v enough_o for_o to_o purge_v yea_o after_o this_o life_n except_o he_o have_v any_o other_o purgation_n then_o that_o which_o be_v make_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o although_o dead_a there_o be_v none_o other_o reason_n for_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o suffrage_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o purgatory_n be_v find_v out_o and_o devise_v by_o man_n invention_n than_o the_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n of_o those_o which_o have_v write_v and_o speak_v of_o it_o yet_o the_o argument_n be_v very_o strong_a for_o they_o do_v propound_v the_o doctrine_n so_o uncertain_a that_o one_o can_v make_v any_o resolution_n and_o a_o great_a deal_n less_o then_o of_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o philosopher_n but_o do_v leave_v always_o the_o conscience_n uncerteyne_a against_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o always_o be_v certain_a and_o clear_a hillarius_n i_o think_v that_o i_o do_v see_v they_o hold_v so_o their_o promise_n &_o contra_fw-la that_o they_o will_v make_v of_o the_o theology_n demma_o a_o academia_n in_o which_o one_o may_v dispute_v probable_o on_o both_o side_n without_o give_v any_o certain_a resolution_n but_o leave_v all_o thing_n in_o doubt_n for_o what_o foundation_n have_v all_o that_o which_o they_o do_v affirm_v and_o say_v but_o upon_o fable_n and_o man_n opinion_n the_o which_o we_o may_v as_o sure_o deny_v as_o they_o to_o affirm_v they_o yea_o by_o more_o just_a reason_n for_o we_o have_v more_o scripture_n for_o to_o tell_v they_o the_o contrary_a than_o they_o have_v of_o apparent_a reason_n for_o to_o prove_v that_o which_o they_o affirm_v for_o they_o be_v doctor_n of_o which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v off_o which_o do_v not_o understand_v that_o which_o they_o speak_v nor_o which_o they_o teach_v and_o affirm_v theophilus_n if_o they_o be_v so_o modest_a and_o reasonable_a 7._o as_o the_o philosopher_n academians_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o much_o to_o be_v despise_v and_o blame_v there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o it_o be_v require_v that_o we_o be_v assure_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o require_v the_o faith_n and_o religion_n for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o faith_n where_o there_o be_v but_o opinion_n without_o certain_a persuasion_n wherefore_o the_o theologian_n have_v not_o so_o lawful_a and_o just_a excuse_n as_o the_o achademians_n for_o when_o the_o question_n be_v but_o of_o human_a and_o natural_a thing_n it_o be_v not_o so_o great_a a_o danger_n to_o follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o man_n and_o to_o abide_v in_o doubt_n but_o when_o it_o be_v a_o question_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n it_o must_v be_v that_o the_o conscience_n be_v assure_v the_o which_o it_o can_v be_v but_o by_o the_o certain_a word_n of_o god_n now_o we_o do_v clear_o see_v that_o in_o such_o matter_n they_o go_v not_o but_o by_o divinity_n conjecture_n and_o presumption_n and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o say_v and_o speak_v that_o which_o come_v in_o his_o fantasy_n but_o if_o they_o do_v that_o but_o amongst_o themselves_o by_o manner_n of_o disputation_n as_o the_o academians_n do_v and_o after_o the_o manner_n as_o saint_n augustine_n do_v put_v forth_o the_o question_n of_o purgatory_n without_o affirm_v it_o as_o a_o article_n of_o say_v we_o will_v let_v they_o dispute_v as_o long_o as_o they_o will._n but_o behold_v that_o which_o be_v worse_o they_o will_v that_o their_o opinion_n shall_v be_v receive_v and_o allow_v as_o oracle_n and_o revelation_n descend_v from_o heaven_n and_o they_o pronounce_v and_o give_v their_o sentence_n with_o more_o great_a authority_n then_o if_o they_o do_v speak_v of_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n and_o do_v compel_v the_o
the_o apostle_n the_o which_o some_o among_o the_o ancient_n and_o among_o the_o pope_n and_o counsel_n have_v be_v hold_v some_o for_o canonical_a and_o other_o for_o apocrypha_n because_o that_o they_o do_v serve_v in_o many_o thing_n confirmable_a to_o the_o apostolical_a doctirne_n but_o they_o be_v not_o bind_v unto_o they_o as_o unto_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o they_o can_v reject_v as_o they_o have_v do_v often_o time_n when_o they_o have_v find_v any_o canon_n which_o seem_v much_o to_o differ_v from_o the_o apostolical_a doctirne_n even_o so_o may_v we_o do_v of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n we_o may_v well_o draw_v out_o of_o they_o example_n for_o to_o exhort_v the_o faithful_a unto_o paclence_n constancy_n and_o martyrdom_n propound_v and_o declare_v unto_o they_o the_o virtue_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o that_o good_a mother_n with_o her_o seven_o son_n who_o stand_v so_o constant_o unto_o death_n for_o to_o maintain_v the_o law_n of_o good_a who_o have_v not_o yet_o nevertheless_o such_o a_o occasion_n to_o do_v that_o as_o we_o which_o have_v more_o sure_a and_o certain_a witness_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o of_o example_n more_o evident_a aswell_o in_o jesus_n christ_n as_o in_o his_o apostle_n &_o disciple_n than_o they_o have_v and_o so_o say_v s._n augstyne_n but_o it_o follow_v not_o therefore_o that_o at●_n touch_v the_o doctrine_n which_o concern_v the_o faith_n and_o religion_n they_o shall_v be_v with_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o other_o and_o therefore_o the_o gloze_n make_v upon_o the_o decree_n recysith_v they_o among_o the_o apocrypha_n eusebius_n i_o will_v glad_o that_o thou_o will_v declare_v unto_o i_o a_o little_a more_o plain_o what_o thou_o understand_v by_o the_o canonical_n and_o apocrypha_n theophilus_n i_o do_v call_v canonical_a all_o the_o book_n of_o book_n the_o new_a testament_n the_o which_o we_o have_v and_o of_o the_o do_v in_o like_a manner_n all_o those_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o hebrew_n bible_n the_o which_o we_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n and_o true_a servant_n of_o god_n and_o who_o author_n be_v certain_a and_o know_v and_o we_o do_v call_v they_o canonical_a which_o signify_v asmuch_o as_o rule_n because_o they_o be_v of_o a_o infallible_a verity_n &_o a_o certain_a &_o sure_a rule_n which_o be_v give_v we_o of_o god_n for_o to_o rule_a &_o examine_v all_o other_o doctrine_n &_o to_o prove_v the_o spirit_n whelter_n they_o be_v of_o god_n and_o for_o to_o live_v according_a to_o the_o same_o eusebius_n and_o what_o understand_v thou_o by_o apocrypha_n apocrypha_fw-la theophilus_n apocrypha_n signify_v a_o thing_n hide_v secret_a or_o obscure_a which_o have_v no_o sure_a or_o certain_a author_n or_o which_o be_v not_o allow_v as_o be_v you_o book_n to_o you_o title_n be_v apply_v &_o make_v at_o which_o be_v not_o sufferable_a but_o insomuch_o as_o their_o doctrine_n be_v confirmable_a unto_o that_o of_o canonicall_n the_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v rule_v by_o they_o and_o they_o have_v no_o firm_a authority_n but_o that_o which_o those_o do_v give_v unto_o it_o for_o in_o steed_n that_o we_o may_v take_v a_o sure_a foundation_n and_o building_n upon_o any_o place_n take_v out_o of_o the_o canonicall_n we_o can_v do_v it_o in_o those_o here_o if_o they_o have_v not_o already_o their_o foundation_n on_o the_o other_o they_o have_v not_o be_v call_v apocrypha_fw-la because_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o have_v they_o in_o one_o library_n and_o to_o read_v they_o with_o judgement_n for_o one_o profit_n for_o that_o be_v not_o forbid_v but_o have_v take_v that_o name_n because_o that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o such_o authority_n the_o one_o shall_v hold_v they_o for_o a_o sure_a and_o infallible_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o they_o be_v not_o red_a and_o expound_v open_o in_o the_o same_o and_o with_o such_o authority_n as_o those_o which_o without_o doubt_n be_v hold_v for_o the_o certain_a word_n of_o god_n to_o the_o which_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v and_o to_o submit_v &_o put_v our_o judgement_n under_o they_o not_o to_o elevate_v it_o above_o they_o or_o to_o judge_v they_o by_o the_o other_o book_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v subject_a unto_o they_o eusebius_n and_o wherefore_o have_v some_o of_o they_o more_o that_o authority_n than_o the_o other_o theophilus_n because_o that_o of_o the_o one_o we_o be_v cert_a eye_n which_o be_v the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n but_o not_o of_o the_o other_o but_o to_o the_o contrary_n eusebius_n by_o what_o mean_n be_v it_o not_o because_o the_o church_n have_v allow_v they_o and_o not_o the_o other_o now_o sith_o that_o their_o authority_n depend_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n if_o she_o do_v receive_v these_o here_o as_o the_o canonical_a &_o make_v they_o of_o equal_a authority_n wherefore_o shall_v not_o they_o be_v in_o the_o same_o degree_n theophilus_n i_o do_v believe_v that_o thou_o do_v think_v that_o the_o church_n have_v accustom_v to_o legitimate_a the_o book_n as_o appertcine_n the_o pope_n do_v legitimate_a his_o bastard_n the_o popish_a church_n may_v well_o take_v in_o haude_fw-ge that_o but_o that_o be_v not_o the_o property_n of_o the_o of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o although_o she_o will_v legitimation_n legitimate_a they_o yet_o they_o must_v be_v take_v as_o bastard_n legitimate_a by_o the_o pope_n which_o can_v be_v notwithstanding_o bear_v in_o lawful_a marriage_n but_o do_v abide_v always_o bastard_n and_o son_n of_o fornication_n how_o can_v the_o daughter_n engender_v and_o beget_v her_o mother_n or_o her_o father_n how_o can_v the_o church_n church_n give_v authority_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o of_o the_o same_o receive_v she_o and_o of_o the_o same_o be_v beget_v and_o bear_v of_o who_o receive_v the_o sun_n his_o brightness_n do_v he_o receive_v it_o of_o man_n who_o he_o illuminate_v and_o light_v eusebius_n no._n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a man_n of_o it_o theophilus_n be_v it_o clear_a and_o shine_a because_o that_o man_n do_v judge_v and_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v such_o eusebius_n no._n but_o because_o that_o it_o be_v such_o the_o man_n that_o do_v see_v it_o and_o have_v the_o experience_n be_v constrain_v to_o acknowledge_v and_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v such_o theophilus_n thou_o mean_v notwithstanding_o that_o the_o sun_n shall_v be_v clear_a and_o give_v light_a because_o that_o man_n do_v think_v it_o to_o be_v so_o eusebius_n thou_o do_v i_o wrong_n to_o impute_v unto_o i_o that_o which_o i_o never_o speak_v but_o altogether_o contrary_a theophilus_n thou_o have_v say_v it_o by_o other_o word_n whereby_o thou_o do_v not_o perceive_v thyself_o for_o when_o scripture_n thou_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n take_v his_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n thou_o say_v that_o man_n do_v give_v light_n and_o clearness_n unto_o the_o sun._n for_o as_o david_n do_v witness_n the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v pure_a &_o clear_a that_o be_v the_o light_n which_o give_v 9_o light_n unto_o the_o eye_n &_o give_v wisdom_n unto_o babe_n it_o be_v then_o certain_a and_o true_a not_o because_o the_o church_n judge_v it_o such_o but_o it_o judge_v it_o such_o because_o that_o it_o be_v so_o and_o can_v judge_v of_o it_o otherwise_o no_o more_o than_o he_o which_o have_v clear_a eye_n can_v judge_v of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n of_o which_o the_o blind_a person_n be_v not_o capable_a wherefore_o he_o can_v judge_v no_o more_o than_o the_o infidel_n and_o reprohate_o can_v judge_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n nor_o allow_v it_o then_o thou_o may_v by_o this_o understand_v that_o the_o certeynetye_n verity_n and_o firmness_n do_v not_o depend_v upon_o man_n opinion_n and_o judgement_n but_o upon_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o of_o the_o proper_a force_n virtue_n and_o effect_n by_o which_o it_o do_v verify_v itself_o and_o compel_v the_o faithful_a heart_n to_o allow_v and_o receive_v it_o as_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n do_v the_o eye_n for_o the_o sheep_n do_v hear_v and_o understand_v the_o shepeartes_n voice_n but_o not_o that_o of_o the_o stranger_n and_o all_o that_o that_o the_o prophet_n have_v forshew_v and_o teach_v the_o apostle_n in_o like_a manner_n have_v be_v verify_v and_o authorise_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o he_o which_o have_v speak_v in_o they_o insomuch_o that_o all_o the_o world_n can_v resist_v it_o now_o we_o can_v say_v she_o like_v of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n chief_o of_o the_o second_o first_o for_o that_o it_o be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o hebrew_n and_o that_o the_o stile_n of_o the_o same_o witness_v maccabee_n clear_o that_o it_o be_v first_o make_v in_o greek_a and_o be_v not_o translate_v from_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n into_o the_o greek_a tongue_n
adoption_n and_o of_o liberty_n as_o we_o have_v receive_v &_o but_o y_fw-fr they_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n &_o as_o perfect_v in_o their_o estate_n &_o condition_n altogether_o as_o we_o but_o for_o to_o magnify_v y_fw-mi virtue_n &_o glory_n of_o jesus_n christ_n mean_v to_o show_v unto_o we_o y_fw-fr the_o goodness_n y_fw-es we_o have_v receive_v by_o he_o in_o his_o come_n be_v ●●ut_o any_o comparison_n a_o great_a deal_n more_o excellent_a insomuch_o y_fw-fr one_o may_v call_v their_o light_a darkness_n in_o regard_n of_o we_o as_o he_o call_v that_o of_o moses_n in_o comparison_n 3_o of_o that_o of_o jesus_n christ_n touch_v the_o purgatory_n i_o have_v already_o sufficient_o declare_v what_o i_o think_v of_o it_o and_o i_o do_v not_o see_v that_o the_o place_n that_o be_v allege_v of_o you_o book_n judas_n of_o the_o maccabee_n be_v sufficient_a for_o to_o confirm_v it_o although_o that_o the_o book_n be_v very_o ancient_a and_o worthy_a of_o credit_n and_o to_o be_v believe_v for_o although_o that_o judas_n machabeus_n have_v do_v that_o which_o be_v there_o recite_v it_o follow_v not_o therefore_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v the_o like_a for_o the_o particular_a example_n of_o some_o be_v no_o general_a rule_n for_o all_o even_o as_o i_o have_v already_o touch_v speak_v of_o y_fw-fr example_n of_o zipphora_n afterwards_o that_o witness_n be_v all_o alone_a &_o be_v there_o recite_v more_o for_o to_o allow_v the_o resurrection_n and_o for_o a_o public_a witness_n of_o repentance_n then_o for_o to_o induce_v to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a as_o promise_v deliverance_n from_o purgatory_n unto_o those_o for_o who_o it_o be_v offer_v eusebius_n it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o the_o text_n say_v express_o that_o judas_n machabeus_n do_a the_o same_o have_v a_o holy_a and_o a_o devout_a thought_n of_o the_o resurrection_n but_o it_o be_v say_v immediate_o afterwards_o that_o the_o advice_n and_o thought_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v deliver_v from_o their_o sin_n be_v holy_a and_o well_o do_v theophilus_n yet_o the_o same_o conclude_v nothing_o for_o the_o purgatory_n for_o according_a to_o your_o doctrine_n the_o soul_n which_o be_v in_o purgatory_n be_v already_o deliver_v from_o their_o sin_n and_o there_o rest_v no_o more_o but_o the_o pain_n and_o therefore_o we_o shall_v rather_o say_v ut_fw-la à_fw-la poem_n saluantur_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o may_v be_v deliver_v from_o pain_n then_o ut_fw-la à_fw-la peccatis_fw-la saluantur_fw-la that_o they_o may_v be_v deliver_v from_o sin_n eusebius_n thou_o do_v not_o consider_v that_o sin_n contain_v two_o thing_n to_o wit_n the_o fault_n and_o the_o pain_n i_o confess_v fault_n that_o the_o true_a christian_n through_o the_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n be_v deliver_v from_o the_o fault_n but_o it_o follow_v not_o therefore_o but_o that_o they_o must_v yet_o bear_v the_o pain_n and_o satisfy_v in_o purgatory_n theophilus_n whereto_o then_o serve_v we_o jesus_n christ_n and_o whereto_o prof●teth_v we_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n eusebius_n jesus_n christ_n serve_v we_o to_o abolish_v the_o original_a s●●ne_n and_o the_o fault_n of_o our_o sin_n that_o they_o make_v we_o not_o culpable_a of_o eternal_a damnation_n at_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o to_o mitigate_v and_o make_v less_o the_o pain_n the_o which_o we_o have_v merit_v and_o deserve_v theophilus_n i_o can_v understand_v none_o other_o thing_n by_o half_a thy_o speak_n but_o that_o god_n be_v as_o a_o prince_n who_o at_o the_o request_n of_o one_o of_o his_o very_a friend_n or_o of_o the_o friend_n of_o the_o malefactor_n show_v grace_n unto_o the_o malefactor_n upon_o such_o condition_n that_o if_o he_o have_v deserve_v to_o be_v burn_v or_o to_o be_v put_v upon_o the_o wheel_n that_o he_o shall_v have_v only_o but_o his_o head_n cut_v off_o or_o if_o he_o have_v deserve_v to_o have_v have_v his_o head_n cut_v off_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v but_o one_o of_o his_o ear_n cut_v off_o or_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v but_o only_o whip_v or_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v ransom_v with_o some_o piece_n of_o money_n the_o which_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o pay_v yet_o beside_o his_o grace_n and_o pardon_n do_v thou_o esteem_v and_o think_v such_o grace_n and_o pardon_n to_o be_v whole_a and_o perfect_a or_o whether_o thou_o will_v judge_v that_o the_o prince_n have_v whole_o pardon_v the_o malefactor_n hillarius_n not_o i_o eusebius_n be_v not_o that_o sufficient_a enough_o that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v deliver_v we_o from_o eternal_a damnation_n and_o that_o we_o do_v the_o rest_n if_o we_o will_v or_o otherwise_o we_o shall_v be_v save_v to_o good_a cheap_a hillarius_n be_v thou_o afraid_a of_o that_o eusebius_n or_o be_v thou_o angry_a and_o not_o well_o content_a with_o the_o goodness_n that_o god_n will_v do_v unto_o we_o theophilus_n behold_v eusebius_n what_o jesus_n christ_n thou_o make_v for_o we_o and_o what_o credit_n thou_o give_v he_o towards_o god_n his_o father_n if_o he_o can_v obtain_v for_o we_o perfect_a grace_n saviour_n and_o full_a forgiveness_n from_o pain_n &_o fault_n he_o be_v not_o a_o perfect_a saviour_n and_o god_n be_v not_o god_n for_o your_o own_o doctor_n do_v witness_n &_o namely_o raymond_n who_o as_o oftentimes_o as_o god_n raymond_n pardon_v any_o thing_n unto_o any_o one_o he_o pardon_v he_o whole_o for_o otherwise_o god_n work_v not_o perfect_o whereupon_o d●bi●_n they_o do_v allege_v the_o verse_n which_o i_o have_v already_o once_o speak_v off_o hillarius_n by_o that_o account_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v not_o have_v so_o much_o power_n &_o credit_n as_o the_o pope_n who_o by_o his_o bull_n and_o pardon_n promise_v full_a forgiveness_n of_o pain_n and_o fault_n grant_v at_o the_o least_o as_o much_o to_o the_o pardon_n of_o jesus_n tyrant_n christ_n as_o unto_o the_o bull_n and_o pardon_n of_o the_o pope_n thomas_n take_v heed_n eusebius_n thou_o make_v not_o god_n a_o tyrant_n who_o be_v not_o content_a to_o chastise_v &_o punish_v the_o revel_n and_o reprobate_a can_v pardon_v those_o which_o demand_v grace_n and_o mercy_n whatsoever_o request_n one_o do_v make_v unto_o he_o but_o that_o he_o keep_v still_o some_o root_n of_o vengeance_n without_o forget_v the_o injury_n that_o have_v be_v do_v unto_o he_o but_o that_o he_o receive_v satisfaction_n and_o recompense_n either_o on_o his_o body_n or_o his_o good_n the_o heavenly_a father_n 6_o be_v content_a with_o the_o ransom_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n for_o who_o love_n he_o have_v deface_v &_o rend_v in_o piece_n our_o bond_n that_o our_o debt_n and_o sin_n do_v come_v no_o more_o in_o remembrance_n or_o otherwise_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v true_a in_o his_o promise_n which_o he_o have_v make_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o prophet_n and_o servant_n eusebius_n to_o what_o purpose_n be_v it_o then_o write_v that_o it_o be_v a_o good_a thing_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a theophilus_n sith_o that_o the_o book_n be_v not_o allow_v nor_o receive_v for_o authentic_a in_o the_o true_a church_n that_o shall_v be_v great_a folly_n to_o stay_v upon_o it_o any_o long_o if_o i_o will_v not_o bear_v with_o thine_o infirmity_n &_o content_v thou_o more_o full_o i_o do_v leave_v off_o to_o allege_v a_o conjecture_n very_o like_a unto_o that_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v off_o thomas_n put_v it_o forth_o theophilus_n i_o have_v sometime_o think_v that_o that_o proposition_n which_o be_v as_o a_o conclusion_n take_v out_o of_o the_o history_n go_v before_o be_v not_o put_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o say_a book_n but_o rather_o of_o some_o studious_a reader_n which_o have_v no●ed_v the_o same_o in_o the_o margin_n and_o that_o it_o have_v be_v add_v to_o the_o text_n as_o it_o oftentimes_o happen_v in_o many_o good_a author_n and_o i_o be_o not_o alone_a in_o that_o opinion_n but_o many_o wise_a and_o learned_a man_n beside_o i_o and_o if_o one_o do_v examine_v the_o thing_n well_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o see_v y_fw-es the_o continuation_n of_o the_o narration_n seem_v to_o be_v break_v &_o mar_v &_o that_o you_o sentence_n have_v be_v put_v in_o y_fw-es which_o be_v a_o curtain_n annotation_n &_o consequence_n which_o some_o do_v make_v upon_o y_fw-fr text_n as_o it_o oftentimes_o happen_v in_o read_v the_o book_n &_o note_v the_o place_n y_fw-mi which_o we_o will_v have_v to_o serve_v us._n eusebius_n what_o reason_n have_v thou_o for_o to_o prove_v the_o same_o theophilus_n first_o this_o for_o that_o i_o see_v oftentimes_o the_o example_n and_o copy_n of_o many_o book_n to_o vary_v the_o which_o variety_n oftentimes_o be_v happen_v for_o such_o cause_n furthermore_o i_o consider_v that_o in_o that_o time_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o
that_o he_o be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v take_v for_o a_o good_a soldier_n for_o a_o good_a champion_n must_v know_v to_o do_v all_o thing_n and_o that_o he_o must_v be_v find_v amongst_o the_o blow_n and_o in_o the_o skirmish_n and_o alarm_n not_o only_o at_o the_o retreat_n and_o to_o receive_v wage_n he_o despise_v the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o call_v the_o theology_n inferior_a and_o base_a and_o will_v forge_v and_o invent_v for_o we_o a_o metaphysical_a theology_n theology_n hillarius_n also_o peradventure_o he_o will_v by_o the_o same_o as_o well_o extract_v the_o five_o essence_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o the_o alchemist_n do_v of_o metal_n at_o the_o least_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o it_o will_v happen_v of_o his_o metaphysical_a theology_n as_o of_o the_o alchemy_n which_o have_v a_o fair_a show_n &_o to_o be_v of_o great_a value_n but_o it_o consume_v away_o into_o smoke_n he_o speak_v nevertheless_o against_o the_o purgatory_n of_o priest_n wherefore_o i_o be_o abash_v of_o that_o which_o i_o have_v hear_v speak_v that_o at_o this_o present_a he_o endevour_v himself_o to_o set_v it_o up_o again_o in_o that_o poor_a town_n of_o metz_n y_fw-es which_o he_o be_v go_v to_o trouble_v when_o he_o understand_v that_o jesus_n christ_n will_v reign_v there_o but_o i_o great_o doubt_v that_o the_o kitchen_n constrain_v he_o to_o the_o same_o for_o otherwise_o the_o har●th_n will_v be_v cold_a but_o he_o may_v as_o well_o do_v that_o as_o to_o be_v angry_a &_o please_v again_o and_o so_o many_o time_n to_o change_v and_o rechaunge_v his_o coat_n theophilus_n we_o may_v well_o make_v he_o such_o a_o monster_n as_o 2_o eusebius_n cesariensis_n do_v make_v of_o the_o philosopher_n archesilaus_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o preparation_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o archesilaus_n to_o compare_v it_o to_o he_o of_o who_o he_o write_v in_o these_o word_n they_o say_v of_o he_o that_o as_o touch_v his_o fore_a part_n he_o be_v plato_n and_o as_o to_o the_o hinder_a part_n pyrro_n &_o the_o middle_a diodorus_n for_o he_o have_v trouble_v and_o mar_v the_o eloquence_n of_o plato_n through_o the_o subtlety_n and_o sophistry_n of_o the_o philosopher_n diodorus_n and_o by_o the_o subtle_a disputation_n of_o pyrrho_n and_o now_o say_v this_o by_o and_o by_o that_o he_o be_v easy_o roll_v and_o lead_v now_o here_o and_o now_o there_o as_o a_o man_n not_o know_v any_o thing_n and_o have_v no_o rest_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o he_o seem_v through_o the_o shadow_n of_o eloquence_n that_o he_o know_v much_o &_o he_o be_v never_o in_o that_o mind_n y_fw-fr he_o will_v say_v twice_o one_o thing_n and_o that_o he_o will_v abide_v firm_a and_o steedfast_a in_o one_o opinion_n for_o he_o esteem_v not_o a_o man_n to_o be_v ingenious_a and_o witty_a which_o preserve_v &_o continue_v in_o one_o matter_n and_o doctrine_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v call_v a_o caviller_n sophister_n and_o troubler_n which_o know_v nothing_o and_o will_v not_o in_o other_o shall_v perceive_v any_o thing_n he_o trouble_v every_o one_o through_o his_o sophistries_n &_o be_v as_o the_o serpent_n call_v hydra_n hydra_n which_o have_v seven_o head_n but_o he_o cut_v they_o off_o with_o his_o own_o sword_n speak_v against_o &_o gainsay_v his_o own_o doctrine_n deny_v that_o which_o he_o have_v affirm_v and_o destroy_v that_o which_o he_o before_o have_v build_v hillarius_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o paint_v he_o out_o better_o for_o geryon_n he_o be_v as_o a_o geryon_n with_o three_o body_n he_o be_v a_o papist_n a_o evangelist_n and_o a_o lutherian_a he_o be_v a_o sophister_n and_o a_o sorbonist_n and_o yet_o he_o will_v be_v account_v for_o a_o faithful_a and_o a_o christian_a and_o hold_v himself_o neither_o to_o the_o one_o nor_o yet_o to_o the_o other_o hydra_n have_v never_o so_o many_o head_n as_o he_o have_v of_o opinion_n contrary_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o and_o he_o need_v none_o other_o hercules_n for_o to_o cut_v they_o off_o than_o himself_o for_o the_o truth_n which_o god_o have_v compel_v he_o to_o speak_v as_o unto_o the_o wicked_a spirit_n be_v a_o hercules_n sufficient_a hercules_n enough_o for_o to_o vanquish_v the_o false_a doctrine_n that_o he_o now_o maintain_v theophilus_n by_o the_o same_o thou_o may_v know_v the_o study_n 29_o of_o satan_n and_o how_o many_o way_n he_o transfigure_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n and_o what_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o 1●_o false_a prophet_n god_n by_o all_o his_o prophet_n &_o apostle_n have_v commend_v to_o we_o the_o faith_n in_o he_o and_o the_o love_n towards_o prophet_n the_o live_n without_o make_v any_o mention_n y_fw-mi we_o shall_v have_v care_n of_o the_o dead_a the_o devil_n to_o the_o contrary_n by_o his_o false_a prophet_n and_o apostle_n endevour_v himself_o with_o all_o his_o power_n to_o draw_v we_o from_o the_o faith_n unto_o vain_a ceremony_n and_o from_o the_o care_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v of_o the_o live_n and_o of_o the_o poor_a member_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o with_o we_o do_v suffer_v want_n and_o indigence_n for_o to_o make_v we_o stay_v after_o the_o dead_a they_o bring_v they_o meat_n and_o drink_n and_o suffer_v the_o poor_a christian_a brother_n which_o be_v round_o about_o they_o to_o die_v for_o hunger_n this_o miserable_a doctor_n perceive_v that_o he_o can_v not_o satan_n there_o where_o he_o be_v maintain_v the_o purgatory_n of_o y_fw-es priest_n and_o their_o broil_v of_o soul_n be_v will_v set_v up_o a_o new_a purgatory_n for_o the_o body_n but_o when_o he_o perceive_v that_o he_o can_v not_o bring_v it_o about_o he_o be_v return_v to_o carry_v a_o coal_n to_o the_o same_o body_n of_o the_o priest_n for_o to_o heat_v it_o again_o wherein_o he_o manifest_o declare_v what_o faith_n and_o conscience_n he_o have_v &_o how_o much_o one_o ought_v to_o trust_v to_o his_o doctrine_n hillarius_n i_o think_v that_o he_o shall_v have_v no_o less_o appearance_n to_o build_v a_o purgatory_n for_o the_o body_n than_o the_o priest_n to_o have_v build_v one_o for_o the_o soul_n for_o if_o there_o be_v any_o reason_n wherefore_o the_o soul_n ought_v to_o suffer_v for_o their_o sin_n after_o that_o man_n be_v dead_a i_o think_v that_o the_o body_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v quit_v and_o free_a but_o that_o he_o have_v more_o merit_v it_o because_o that_o he_o be_v the_o occasion_n through_o his_o flesh_n and_o the_o instrument_n for_o to_o make_v the_o soulé_fw-fr to_o sin_n wherefore_o if_o you_o think_v eusebius_n that_o god_n shall_v be_v unjust_a as_o thou_o have_v allege_v if_o he_o do_v not_o punish_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o sinner_n in_o purgatory_n he_o shall_v be_v no_o less_o if_o he_o do_v not_o punish_v the_o body_n in_o like_a manner_n which_o have_v be_v always_o companion_n &_o instrument_n to_o the_o soul_n in_o all_o the_o sin_n that_o they_o have_v commit_v and_o therefore_o god_n will_v not_o only_o punish_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o reprobate_n in_o hell_n fire_n but_o the_o body_n also_o even_o as_o be_v will_v glorify_v the_o elect_a in_o body_n and_o soul_n in_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_n theophilus_n also_o this_o good_a doctor_n will_v give_v we_o to_o understand_v since_o you_o he_o have_v enter_v into_o that_o dream_a that_o all_o the_o prayer_n which_o the_o church_n make_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v for_o the_o body_n and_o for_o their_o resurrection_n and_o not_o for_o the_o soul_n and_o condemn_v the_o priest_n and_o their_o purgatory_n and_o be_v make_v no_o doubt_n to_o say_v that_o we_o must_v pray_v for_o the_o saint_n for_o saint_n peter_n s._n paul_n and_o the_o other_o in_o such_o sense_n as_o he_o understand_v even_o as_o it_o have_v be_v touch_v thomas_n i_o do_v understand_v well_o of_o who_o you_o speak_v i_o remember_v that_o at_o the_o disputation_n which_o be_v hold_v at_o lausanne_n he_o speak_v clear_o not_o only_o against_o the_o purgatory_n of_o priest_n but_o also_o against_o the_o transsubstantiation_n and_o corporal_a presence_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o host_n theophilus_n it_o be_v true_a but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n thou_o take_v no_o heed_n of_o the_o subtlety_n of_o satan_n and_o by_o what_o mean_v he_o will_v be_v serve_v of_o that_o sorbonist_n doctor_n because_o in_o satan_n do_v see_v those_o error_n to_o be_v already_o too_o much_o uncover_v and_o open_v &_o that_o he_o have_v no_o more_o hope_n to_o uphold_v they_o chief_o in_o those_o church_n here_o abouts_o he_o have_v choose_v this_o instrument_n for_o to_o set_v forth_o that_o opinion_n the_o which_o can_v not_o serve_v to_o any_o edification_n but_o for_o to_o trouble_v the_o church_n chief_o in_o this_o time_n
such_o as_o have_v not_o know_v he_o in_o this_o world_n whereupon_o shall_v be_v entreat_v the_o place_n of_o saint_n peter_n touch_v the_o preach_n of_o jesus_n christ_n unto_o the_o dead_a &_o to_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v detain_v in_o prison_n &_o for_o the_o end_n &_o conclusion_n of_o all_o those_o matter_n the_o funeral_n of_o purgatory_n shall_v be_v celebrate_v and_o he_o shall_v be_v bury_v for_o that_o cause_n this_o dialogue_n be_v call_v the_o requiescant_fw-la in_o pace_n of_o purgatory_n for_o he_o be_v dead_a and_o bury_v the_o six_o dialogue_n which_o be_v call_v the_o requiescant_fw-la in_o pace_n of_o purgatory_n thomas_n although_o friend_n eusebius_n thou_o have_v resist_v theophilus_n and_o hilary_n as_o much_o as_o thou_o can_v and_o that_o thou_o have_v fight_v valiant_o yet_o nevertheless_o thou_o can_v not_o so_o virtuous_o defend_v thyself_o but_o that_o the_o forward_a the_o wing_n and_o the_o horn_n of_o thy_o army_n and_o almost_o all_o the_o whole_a host_n be_v discomfit_v and_o overcome_v there_o rest_v no_o more_o now_o but_o the_o arrierewarde_n if_o it_o defend_v itself_o no_o valyently_o and_o that_o it_o be_v no_o better_o arm_v then_o the_o other_o thou_o shall_v carry_v no_o good_a news_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o that_o combat_n and_o thou_o shall_v give_v he_o no_o great_a occasion_n to_o receive_v thou_o among_o his_o captain_n and_o to_o reward_v thou_o rich_o eusebius_n i_o do_v not_o fight_v for_o the_o pope_n but_o for_o the_o truth_n it_o be_v to_o i_o all_o one_o who_o do_v you_o gain_n or_o win_v the_o battle_n so_o that_o the_o victory_n abide_v with_o the_o truth_n and_o that_o jesus_n do_v reign_n in_o his_o church_n theophilus_n i_o be_o very_a glade_n for_o the_o good_a affection_n that_o god_o have_v give_v unto_o thou_o and_o that_o thou_o be_v not_o like_a unto_o a_o heap_n and_o company_n of_o ambitious_a and_o glorious_a man_n who_o what_o so_o ever_o evil_a cause_n that_o they_o have_v will_v never_o confess_v themselves_o overcome_v and_o vanquish_v but_o esteem_v their_o glory_n more_o dear_a than_o the_o same_o of_o jesus_n christ_n eusebius_n it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o at_o the_o beginning_n i_o be_v much_o offend_v with_o your_o word_n but_o when_o i_o consider_v that_o which_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o you_o i_o know_v not_o well_o to_o which_o side_n to_o turn_v you_o have_v already_o very_o much_o overcome_v and_o fail_v i_o nevertheless_o i_o have_v yet_o many_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o hold_v i_o in_o suspen_v and_o leave_v i_o in_o a_o great_a scruple_n and_o doubt_n in_o my_o conscience_n until_o such_o time_n as_o thou_o have_v show_v i_o by_o lively_a &_o evident_a reason_n that_o i_o must_v understand_v they_o otherwise_o then_o they_o have_v be_v expound_v unto_o i_o or_o else_o you_o shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o change_v your_o matter_n and_o to_o deny_v and_o unsay_v all_o that_o you_o have_v say_v even_o until_o this_o present_a time_n hillarius_n propound_v they_o all_o by_o order_n and_o theophilus_n will_v address_v &_o guide_v thou_o to_o the_o true_a understanding_n eusebius_n for_o to_o keep_v the_o better_a order_n i_o will_v begin_v by_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o afterward_o will_v follow_v dialogue_n the_o new_a after_o the_o order_n by_o which_o the_o book_n of_o the_o same_o be_v dispose_v and_o set_v allege_v out_o of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o the_o point_n which_o may_v serve_v to_o my_o matter_n i_o will_v put_v forth_o unto_o thou_o that_o which_o thoby_n command_v his_o 18._o son_n say_v set_v thy_o bread_n and_o wine_n upon_o the_o burial_n of_o the_o righteous_a but_o thou_o will_v answer_v unto_o i_o that_o that_o book_n be_v apocrypha_n or_o only_o ecclesiastical_a and_o not_o thobie_n canonical_a as_o thou_o have_v already_o do_v of_o the_o same_o of_o the_o maccabee_n theophilus_n true_o i_o may_v answer_v thou_o so_o but_o although_o it_o be_v canonical_a where_o too_o will_v it_o serve_v for_o thy_o matter_n eusebius_n very_o well_o follow_v the_o interpretation_n of_o eccius_n which_o expound_v it_o of_o the_o almoses_n for_o to_o refresh_v thoby_n the_o poor_a that_o they_o shall_v pray_v unto_o god_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o dead_a theophilus_n he_o that_o will_v follow_v the_o exposition_n of_o eccius_n there_o be_v not_o a_o place_n in_o the_o bible_n which_o he_o have_v not_o corrupt_v and_o mar_v for_o to_o make_v it_o serve_v to_o the_o popish_a tyranny_n in_o the_o book_n of_o thoby_n &_o in_o that_o place_n there_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a and_o although_o those_o word_n precede_v thereunto_o he_o ought_v rather_o to_o have_v say_v set_v thy_o bread_n upon_o the_o burial_n of_o the_o sinner_n then_o upon_o that_o of_o the_o righteous_a for_o the_o sinner_n shall_v have_v more_o need_n of_o such_o prayer_n than_o the_o righteous_a but_o he_o say_v altogether_o contrary_a for_o he_o add_v eat_v and_o drink_v not_o with_o the_o sinner_n and_o wicked_a the_o which_o be_v better_o express_v by_o the_o greek_a say_v set_v thy_o bread_n upon_o the_o burial_n of_o the_o righteous_a and_o give_v it_o not_o unto_o sinner_n wherefore_o it_o be_v most_o like_a to_o be_v true_a sith_o that_o before_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o almoses_n that_o he_o recommend_v by_o those_o word_n chief_o the_o righteous_a and_o faithful_a even_o as_o saint_n paul_n above_o all_o other_o recommend_v those_o of_o the_o household_n of_o faith_n now_o there_o be_v many_o manner_n and_o way_n to_o bestow_v one_o bread_n and_o wine_n upon_o the_o burial_n of_o the_o righteous_a the_o first_o be_v thob●●●●●_n in_o bury_v they_o honest_o as_o thoby_n do_v without_o spare_v that_o which_o be_v there_o unto_o needful_a and_o requisite_a for_o the_o hebrew_n by_o the_o bread_n wine_n and_o water_n do_v understand_v all_o the_o thing_n necessary_a unto_o man_n and_o unto_o man_n life_n the_o other_o be_v when_o we_o do_v help_v our_o brother_n &_o succour_v so_o their_o necessity_n that_o they_o die_v not_o for_o want_v of_o victual_n nor_o go_v down_o to_o the_o grave_n without_o be_v bury_v if_o we_o do_v otherwise_o we_o kill_v they_o when_o we_o f●●de_v they_o not_o and_o that_o they_o do_v die_v through_o our_o default_n the_o third_o be_v when_o we_o comfort_v through_o almoses_n the_o child_n and_o friend_n of_o the_o dead_a then_o we_o shed_v forth_o our_o bread_n and_o wine_n upon_o their_o burial_n behold_v the_o holy_a water_n that_o they_o desire_v and_o it_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n better_a to_o do_v after_o that_o sort_n then_o to_o play_v the_o glutton_n with_o the_o glutton_n drunkard_n and_o wicked_a but_o the_o manner_n of_o speech_n be_v somewhat_o obscure_a because_o that_o the_o book_n notwithstanding_o that_o it_o be_v write_v in_o greek_a yet_o nevertheless_o it_o keep_v the_o phrase_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o hebrew_n speech_n hillarius_n he_o that_o will_v then_o follow_v the_o counsel_n of_o thoby_n must_v no_o more_o banquet_n and_o feast_v the_o priest_n sith_o 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o forbid_v to_o give_v his_o bread_n and_o wine_n unto_o sinner_n and_o the_o wicked_a for_o there_o be_v not_o a_o people_n upon_o the_o earth_n of_o a_o more_o execrable_a life_n nor_o which_o do_v more_o abuse_v the_o good_n which_o god_o have_v give_v unto_o man_n among_o who_o one_o may_v well_o account_v and_o number_n eccius_n for_o one_o of_o the_o principal_a captain_n of_o god_n bacchus_n for_o he_o be_v very_o angry_a that_o day_n he_o be_v not_o drunken_a in_o wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o he_o will_v maintain_v the_o spit_n and_o the_o frying-pan_n but_o yet_o no_o veil_n 〈◊〉_d although_o he_o and_o all_o such_o as_o he_o be_v will_v press_v and_o take_v the_o word_n of_o thoby_n by_o the_o rigour_n without_o admit_v any_o exposition_n confirmable_a and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o shall_v have_v have_v more_o colour_n for_o to_o allow_v the_o ancient_a custom_n which_o the_o paynim_n have_v to_o carry_v bread_n upon_o the_o burial_n and_o to_o 66_o pour_v thereon_o wine_n even_o as_o already_o have_v be_v speak_v then_o for_o to_o prove_v the_o banquet_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a nevertheless_o we_o be_v well_o assure_v that_o neither_o thoby_n nor_o any_o other_o holy_a man_n but_o have_v have_v regard_v not_o to_o allow_v such_o superstitious_a eusebius_n let_v we_o leave_v of_o eccius_n and_o the_o priest_n and_o answer_v i_o unto_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o psalm_n we_o have_v pass_v through_o the_o fire_n and_o water_n and_o thou_o have_v draw_v we_o out_o and_o set_v we_o in_o joy_n and_o comfort_n how_o understand_v thou_o that_o place_n
that_o power_n but_o of_o he_o wherefore_o one_o may_v right_o say_v of_o he_o the_o lord_n the_o god_n of_o gods._n for_o there_o be_v not_o a_o priest_n of_o how_o small_a learning_n soever_o he_o be_v which_o according_a to_o their_o doctrine_n but_o dare_v to_o attribute_v unto_o himself_o the_o power_n to_o make_v gods._n for_o which_o i_o will_v have_v none_o other_o witness_n but_o their_o book_n entitle_v stella_fw-la clericorum_fw-la in_o which_o be_v write_v such_o word_n oh_o how_o venerable_a be_v the_o dignity_n of_o the_o priest_n between_o who_o hand_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v incarnate_a as_o in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin_n and_o afterwards_o speaking●●n_a the_o person_n of_o the_o priest_n he_o which_o have_v create_v i_o have_v give_v i_o power_n to_o create_v he_o he_o which_o have_v create_v i_o without_o i_o be_v create_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o i_o afterwards_o he_o conclude_v sith_o then_o that_o the_o priest_n be_v of_o so_o great_a a_o dignity_n that_o he_o be_v the_o creator_n and_o maker_n of_o his_o creator_n and_o of_o every_o creature_n it_o be_v not_o convenient_a to_o loose_v or_o damn_v he_o they_o do●_n find_v it_o inconvenient_a that_o god_n shall_v dampne_v the_o priest_n because_o that_o they_o be_v the_o creator_n mar●●is_n of_o hun_z and_o yet_o nevertheless_o the_o pope_n may_v well_o condemn_v the_o pope_n yea_o out_o of_o this_o world_n since_o that_o they_o be_v before_o god_n their_o sovereign_a judge_n which_o be_v not_o only_a priest_n but_o which_o be_v more_o do_v make_v the_o priest_n do_v thou_o find_v this_o strange_a thomas_n thomas_n to_o speak_v the_o truth_n those_o god_n do_v handle_v very_o evil_a the_o one_o the_o other_o hillarius_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o which_o pope_n stephen_n have_v do_v unto_o formosus_fw-la do_v not_o seem_v strange_a unto_o thou_o but_o pope_n sergius_n the_o three_o have_v do_v unto_o he_o worse_o thomas_n then_o that_o poor_a soul_n formosus_fw-la be_v most_o unhappy_a after_o his_o death_n they_o have_v do_v against_o the_o proverb_n which_o forbid_v to_o fight_v with_o the_o dead_a hillarius_n thou_o may_v have_v well_o say_v it_o if_o thou_o have_v hear_v the_o history_n all_o out_o the_o cruelty_n of_o l._n sylla_n against_o marius_n be_v not_o so_o great_a but_o i_o think_v nevertheless_o but_o that_o those_o pope_n have_v take_v their_o patron_n upon_o he_o for_o so_o do_v he_o cause_n marius_n to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o y_fw-fr earth_n after_o y_fw-es he_o be_v dead_a to_o be_v avenge_v of_o he_o and_o sylla_n fear_v that_o one_o shall_v not_o do_v to_o he_o the_o like_a after_o he_o be_v dead_a command_v that_o his_o body_n shall_v be_v burn_v for_o until_o his_o time_n the_o famelly_n of_o which_o he_o come_v off_o accustom_v to_o bury_v the_o body_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o burn_v they_o as_o other_o do_v but_o for_o to_o return_v unto_o sergius_n thou_o must_v understand_v first_o that_o he_o have_v so_o reprove_v all_o the_o act_n of_o formosus_fw-la that_o those_o who_o formosus_fw-la do_v make_v priest_n shall_v return_v fermesus_n again_o to_o take_v their_o order_n of_o he_o judge_v those_o unworthy_a to_o be_v priest_n who_o formosus_fw-la have_v make_v if_o they_o do_v not_o the_o same_o and_o not_o be_v content_a to_o have_v do_v that_o dishonour_n unto_o formosus_fw-la after_o his_o death_n cause_v his_o body_n to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o sepulchre_n again_o and_o do_v not_o only_o cut_v off_o the_o finger_n or_o the_o hand_n as_o stephen_n his_o predecessor_n do_v but_o do_v cut_v of_o his_o head_n as_o a_o malefactor_n even_o so_o as_o though_o he_o be_v a_o live_v afterwards_o do_v cast_v the_o body_n into_o the_o stud_n tiber_n as_o unworthy_a of_o burial_n and_o human_a honour_n ●hou_fw-mi can_v not_o now_o deny_v theophilus_n but_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n ●oth_o over_o the_o god_n and_o over_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o for_o more_o great_a confirmation_n hereof_o 2_o they_o have_v their_o canon_n which_o do_v give_v unto_o they_o power_n to_o judge_v not_o only_o the_o quick_a but_o also_o over_o the_o dead_a and_o to_o excommunicate_v &_o accurse_v the_o heretic_n but_o which_o to_o more_o pope_n boniface_n have_v better_a declare_v his_o divine_a power_n against_o s._n harman_n who_o body_n and_o bone_n he_o cause_v to_o be_v 8._o dig_v up_o who_o those_o of_o ferrara_n have_v honour_v &_o account_v for_o a_o saint_n already_o the_o space_n of_o xx_o year_n &_o condemn_v he_o for_o a_o heretic_n and_o burn_v he_o as_o some_o say_v that_o they_o have_v also_o do_v y_fw-fr like_o of_o wikchf_n who_o nevertheless_o be_v of_o better_a learning_n they_o his_o adversary_n but_o that_o same_o be_v always_o common_a to_o all_o the_o papistical_a sect_n as_o de_fw-fr roma_n the_o defiler_n of_o the_o faith_n have_v well_o confirm_v it_o those_o year_n past_a in_o two_o poor_a faithful_a christian_n at_o aix_n in_o provence_n he_o have_v stock_v &_o imprison_v they_o so_o much_o &_o have_v so_o scorch_v and_o burn_v their_o foot_n &_o ankle_n within_o their_o boot_n which_o he_o fill_v with_o grease_n and_o so_o put_v to_o fire_n that_o those_o poor_a people_n &_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n christ_n can_v not_o tarry_v the_o time_n to_o be_v altogether_o burn_v but_o they_o die_v while_o that_o he_o be_v absent_a &_o be_v bury_v by_o y_fw-es hangman_n in_o unhallowed_a ground_n because_o that_o they_o be_v account_v by_o they_o for_o heretic_n yet_o nevertheless_o that_o cruel_a tyrant_n de_fw-fr roma_fw-it can_v not_o be_v ●aith_n content_v with_o all_o that_o but_o be_v very_o angry_a because_o they_o bury_v they_o &_o cause_v they_o to_o dig_v they_o up_o again_o &_o to_o burn_v the_o be_v dead_a sith_o you_o he_o can_v not_o burn_v they_o be_v alive_a on_o a'n_z contrary_n even_o as_o boniface_n have_v cause_v this_o s._n ha●man_n to_o be_v dig_v up_o &_o to_o be_v condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n &_o burn_v herman_n he_o who_o nevertheless_o be_v account_v for_o a_o saint●_n he_o have_v also_o canonize_v s._n lewes_n who_o be_v of_o you_o blood_n royal_a who_o as_o canonize_a some_o man_n say_v be_v profess_v of_o you_o order_n of_o s._n frances_n also_o in_o like_a manner_n pope_n felix_n &_o gregory_n have_v ordain_v that_o one_o shall_v celebrate_v yearly_a feast_n &_o sacrifice_n in_o y●_n memory_n of_o y_fw-es martyr_n now_o what_o other_o thing_n be_v in_o but_o to_o judge_v they_o saint_n &_o to_o deify_v they_o but_o to_o you_o end_n y_fw-es every_o one_o do_v not_o attribute_v unto_o themselves_o the_o power_n to_o make_v god_n as_o the_o pope_n &_o that_o every_o one_o do_v not_o honour_v he_o y_fw-fr come_v in_o their_o fantasy_n pope_n alexander_n y_fw-fr three_o have_v ordain_v y_fw-mi no_o man_n shall_v be_v hold_v and_o account_v for_o a_o saint_n and_o that_o no_o divine_a honour_n shall_v be_v attribute_v unto_o he_o except_o that_o he_o be_v first_o enrol_v among_o the_o saint_n and_o canonize_a by_o the_o commandment_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o apostolical_a seat_n that_o commandment_n and_o degree_n be_v write_v in_o the_o decretal_n in_o the_o title_n of_o the_o relic_n of_o saint_n sith_o then_o that_o he_o canonise_v and_o make_v saintes_n afterward_o when_o they_o be_v make_v he_o unmake_v they_o it_o follow_v then_o that_o he_o make_v and_o unmake_v the_o god_n &_o that_o he_o be_v judge_n both_o of_o the_o quick_a and_o of_o the_o dead_a for_o all_o that_o be_v god_n unto_o man_n to_o who_o he_o give_v the_o honour_n due_a unto_o god_n now_o we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o superstitious_a and_o idolater_n do_v give_v unto_o their_o saint_n and_o unto_o dead_a man_n the_o ●onor_n idolater_n due_a unto_o god_n alone_o wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v their_o god_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o idolater_n those_o who_o they_o have_v account_v for_o god_n which_o nevertheless_o be_v dead_a man_n which_o have_v be_v canonize_v by_o the_o king_n prince_n and_o senate_n and_o the_o common_a error_n of_o the_o people_n even_o as_o the_o 4._o pope_n &_o the_o superstitious_a do_v yet_o use_v at_o this_o day_n sith_o then_o that_o the_o pope_n make_v and_o unmake_v such_o god_n which_o be_v dead_a man_n and_o judge_v condemn_v and_o absolve_v they_o it_o follow_v then_o that_o he_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o quick_a &_o the_o dead_a the_o which_o be_v also_o declare_v by_o the_o example_n of_o y_fw-es emperor_n henry_n y_fw-fr four_o who_o be_v excommunicate_v afterward_o be_v put_v into_o a_o cruel_a prison_n in_o y_fw-es city_n of_o liege_n by_o his_o proper_a 4._o and_o only_a son_n in_o the_o which_o he_o be_v strangle_v and_o so_o as_o
rest_n except_o that_o sometime_o those_o little_a varlet_n and_o lockesmithe_n do_v pick_v the_o lock_n and_o the_o door_n of_o the_o great_a loksmith_n lock_n and_o great_a treasurer_n he_o know_v nothing_o thereof_o and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o therewithal_o content_a although_o that_o under_o his_o name_n and_o title_n they_o ster_v forth_o their_o power_n as_o seem_v good_a unto_o they_o and_o do_v forge_v key_n bull_n and_o pardon_n as_o many_o as_o they_o list_v and_o always_o at_o the_o cost_n of_o the_o poor_a people_n now_o the_o great_a lockesmith_n have_v no_o limit_n but_o that_o he_o have_v always_o reasonable_a cause_n for_o to_o give_v bull_n and_o pardon_n as_o many_o as_o one_o will_v so_o that_o money_n do_v come_v or_o otherwise_o he_o will_v suffer_v the_o poor_a soul_n to_o be_v roast_v and_o torment_v in_o purgatory_n as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n shall_v continue_v for_o want_v of_o one_o leaf_n of_o paper_n or_o parchment_n with_o a_o little_a wax_n and_o lead_v as_o concern_v the_o other_o which_o have_v the_o day_n limit_v that_o they_o may_v give_v pardon_n i_o have_v a_o certain_a doubt_n the_o which_o i_o will_v that_o i_o be_v resolve_v of_o it_o by_o thou_o eusebius_n for_o sith_o that_o the_o one_o have_v power_n to_o give_v two_o or_o three_o thousand_o a_o other_o two_o or_o three_o hundred_o a_o other_o a_o hundred_o fifty_o forty_o thirty_o or_o twenty_o either_o more_o or_o less_o i_o will_v glad_o know_v of_o thou_o what_o purgatory_n horologe_n &_o clock_n &_o what_o quadrant_n they_o have_v in_o purgary_n for_o to_o measure_v those_o day_n there_o for_o sith_o that_o there_o be_v no_o sun_n moon_n nor_o star_n what_o day_n &_o what_o year_n can_v they_o have_v for_o the_o time_n be_v take_v of_o the_o morning_n of_o the_o heaven_n &_o of_o the_o course_n of_o the_o sun_n but_o those_o which_o be_v in_o purgatory_n have_v nothing_o of_o all_o this_o wherefore_o i_o can_v comprehend_v what_o year_n what_o month_n day_n &_o hour_n they_o can_v have_v &_o whether_o they_o be_v very_o long_a or_o short_a purgatory_n as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v imagine_v by_o a_o example_n which_o antonius_n florentin_n recite_v in_o his_o sum_n the_o day_n ought_v there_o to_o be_v marvellous_a long_o for_o he_o say_v that_o a_o angel_n carry_v thither_o a_o soul_n of_o a_o man_n to_o who_o he_o promise_v that_o it_o shall_v tarry_v there_o but_o a_o hour_n and_o as_o soon_o as_o that_o angel_n do_v come_v again_o to_o see_v that_o soul_n it_o do_v begin_v to_o cry_v out_o upon_o he_o and_o to_o call_v he_o liar_n deceiver_n and_o traitor_n thomas_n to_o what_o purpose_n hillarius_n it_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o have_v promise_v i_o that_o i_o shall_v be_v but_o a_o hour_n and_o i_o have_v be_v here_o already_o more_o than_o a_o hundred_o year_n but_o the_o angel_n answer_v unto_o he_o there_o want_v a_o great_a many_o my_o friend_n for_o thou_o have_v not_o yet_o tarry_v a_o quarter_n of_o a_o hour_n wherefore_o i_o do_v conclude_v that_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o the_o day_n and_o year_n be_v there_o very_o long_o sith_o that_o a_o quarter_n of_o a_o hour_n be_v there_o compare_v to_o a_o hundred_o or_o thousand_o year_n of_o we_o or_o else_o that_o the_o fire_n be_v there_o marvellous_a hot_a and_o that_o the_o time_n continue_v long_o to_o the_o poor_a soul_n eusebius_n i_o will_v tell_v thou_o as_o touch_v the_o pardon_n it_o have_v be_v long_a time_n sithence_o that_o many_o people_n do_v know_v that_o there_o be_v in_o they_o great_a abuse_n wherefore_o i_o will_v not_o much_o break_v my_o brain_n to_o maintain_v they_o theophilus_n i_o do_v also_o judge_v it_o lose_v time_n to_o speak_v of_o such_o abuse_n if_o i_o do_v not_o see_v that_o sithence_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n so_o many_o people_n to_o have_v be_v abuse_v &_o that_o so_o many_o great_a doctor_n which_o be_v most_o esteem_v amongst_o the_o sophister_n and_o schoolman_n have_v write_v of_o it_o and_o have_v confirm_v it_o so_o assure_o hillarius_n pope_n i_o know_v that_o thou_o do_v begin_v already_o eusebius_n to_o agree_v with_o we_o i_o believe_v that_o thou_o be_v of_o this_o opinion_n that_o the_o pope_n ought_v to_o let_v the_o dead_a rest_n without_o reign_v over_o they_o sith_o that_o they_o have_v more_o power_n over_o the_o pope_n than_o the_o pope_n over_o they_o as_o i_o will_v prove_v it_o by_o a_o example_n take_v from_o the_o authentic_a book_n which_o be_v entitle_v the_o conformity_n of_o saint_n frances_n for_o i_o have_v never_o read_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v raise_v to_o life_n any_o dead_a person_n and_o that_o he_o come_v to_o answer_v before_o he_o of_o all_o those_o who_o he_o have_v cite_v condemn_v absolve_v or_o excommunicate_v but_o that_o book_n do_v witness_v manifest_o that_o friar_n walter_n a_o cordelier_n and_o bishop_n of_o poytiers_n have_v dead_a cause_v to_o be_v cite_v after_o his_o death_n by_o a_o cedule_z pope_n clement_n the_o first_o for_o to_o appear_v before_o the_o eternal_a judge_n because_o that_o he_o have_v unjust_o depose_v he_o from_o his_o office_n thomas_n and_o do_v the_o pope_n appear_v there_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o cytation_n hillarius_n if_o the_o book_n lie_v not_o that_o be_v no_o jest_n for_o at_o the_o very_a same_o day_n which_o be_v prescribe_v unto_o he_o the_o pope_n die_v of_o a_o sudden_a death_n and_o depart_v sudden_o for_o to_o go_v and_o answer_v there_o what_o say_v thou_o by_o this_o eusebius_n if_o this_o history_n be_v false_a it_o be_v a_o great_a dishonour_n for_o the_o cardelier_n who_o do_v make_v great_a account_n of_o that_o book_n and_o do_v hold_v it_o to_o be_v very_o precious_a among_o they_o as_o a_o relic_n and_o revelation_n and_o for_o the_o pope_n also_o which_o have_v confirm_v the_o order_n of_o saint_n frances_n and_o of_o the_o four_o mendicant_n i_o know_v not_o what_o good_a mean_n we_o may_v here_o find_v for_o to_o maintain_v that_o building_n and_o mendicant_n the_o honour_n and_o authority_n both_o of_o the_o one_o and_o of_o the_o other_o for_o sith_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v confirm_v the_o order_n of_o saint_n frances_n the_o order_n of_o saint_n frances_n be_v build_v and_o stay_v upon_o the_o pope_n wherefore_o when_o the_o pope_n shall_v fall_v which_o be_v the_o stone_n and_o foundation_n of_o that_o church_n and_o of_o that_o building_n also_o shall_v fall_v the_o building_n the_o order_n and_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o mendicant_n now_o we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o example_n do_v ruinate_v &_o overthrow_v the_o pope_n &_o all_o his_o power_n i_o do_v not_o dispute_v whether_o that_o the_o history_n be_v true_a or_o false_a for_o i_o believe_v that_o be_v as_o true_a as_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v god_n &_o saint_n france_n conformable_a &_o agree_v to_o jesus_n christ_n as_z that_o book_n full_a of_o blasphemy_n enforce_v itself_o to_o prove_v it_o but_o i_o consider_v only_o that_o sith_o that_o the_o cordelier_n have_v write_v such_o a_o history_n &_o do_v maintain_v it_o by_o their_o book_n that_o they_o do_v abate_v asmuch_o the_o authority_n and_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o pope_n do_v confirm_v their_o rule_n and_o order_n for_o how_o can_v this_o witness_n agree_v with_o this_o proposition_n the_o pope_n can_v err_v and_o with_o the_o exposition_n which_o eccius_n and_o his_o like_a do_v make_v of_o those_o word_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o that_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o congregation_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v that_o rock_n or_o stone_n and_o that_o stone_n be_v fall_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o all_o the_o popish_a church_n do_v fall_v with_o it_o and_o the_o order_n of_o the_o four_o mendicant_n which_o be_v his_o four_o euangelyst_n and_o his_o principal_a pillar_n and_o evangeliste_n so_o by_o that_o mean_v the_o cordelier_n who_o the_o pope_n have_v make_v do_v unmake_v the_o pope_n which_o have_v make_v they_o and_o the_o creature_n unmake_v his_o creator_n and_o the_o creator_n his_o creature_n theophilus_n it_o chance_v to_o they_o as_o to_o the_o madianit_n ●2_o which_o destroy_v themselves_o the_o one_o the_o other_o with_o their_o own_o weapon_n when_o they_o hear_v the_o sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n and_o pitcher_n of_o the_o army_n of_o gedeon_n and_o see_v the_o light_n of_o his_o torch_n so_o in_o like_a manner_n sith_o that_o jesus_n christ_n our_o true_a gedeon_n have_v put_v the_o trumpet_n of_o his_o gospel_n gedeon_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o little_a army_n the_o which_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n he_o make_v to_o sound_v even_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o
peace_n and_o at_o rest_n wherefore_o let_v we_o sing_v a_o other_o oremus_fw-la let_v we_o suffer_v they_o to_o sing_v that_o in_o steed_n of_o vigiles_fw-la and_o of_o libera_n i_o and_o of_o their_o fidelium_fw-la and_o i_o will_v make_v his_o epitaph_n which_o shall_v serve_v he_o for_o his_o latter_a oremus_fw-la oh_o gentle_a sir_n john_n who_o of_o purgatory_n have_v get_v so_o much_o of_o silver_n and_o gold_n make_v speedy_o to_o be_v know_v to_o all_o of_o the_o popry_n to_o sing_v requiem_n aeternam_fw-la for_o his_o sweet_a soul_n by_o he_o a_o epicure_n life_n thou_o do_v lead_v but_o now_o alas_o he_o be_v dead_a a_o have_v no_o place_n and_o with_o he_o thy_o earthly_a kingdom_n be_v dead_a sing_v for_o he_o then_o requiescant_fw-la in_o pace_n thomas_n amen_n now_o sith_o that_o he_o be_v bury_v let_v we_o go_v to_o supper_n that_o he_o may_v have_v also_o his_o funeral_n supper_n and_o that_o we_o may_v as_o well_o banquet_n as_o the_o priest_n in_o those_o of_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o anniversary_n &_o year_n mind_n hillarius_n let_v we_o go_v finis_fw-la ¶_o a_o table_n of_o the_o principal_a matter_n of_o the_o third_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a disputation_n a._n absolution_n of_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a 275._o advertisement_n 293._o against_o the_o originist_n 272._o alexander_n 283._o among_o who_o be_v repute_v the_o soul_n of_o purgatory_n 274._o anabaptist_n 238._o ansegisus_fw-la 234_o angel_n dare_v not_o curse_v the_o devil_n 285._o answer_v to_o the_o place_n of_o the_o psalm_n 263._o antechrist_n 276._o antiochus_n 215._o apocrypha_n what_o it_o be_v 216._o apostle_n of_o the_o circumcision_n 257._o apothegma_n 211_o archesilaus_n 257._o argument_n a_o posteriori_fw-la 279._o ash_n of_o pope_n boniface_n 280._o augmentation_n of_o the_o felicity_n to_o angel_n 246._o authority_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n 213._o authority_n of_o the_o prophet_n &_o apostle_n 217._o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n 217._o authority_n of_o the_o church_n 217._o b._n baptise_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o fire_n 235_o baptise_v two_o time_n in_o the_o year_n 239_o baptism_n delay_v 239._o baptism_n only_a of_o jesus_n christ_n 256_o baptism_n of_o woman_n 241_o baptism_n of_o water_n whether_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n 232._o baptism_n of_o devotion_n 233._o baptism_n of_o blood_n 237._o to_o be_v baptize_v for_o the_o dead_a 290_o beginning_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o god._n 247._o begin_v of_o hell_n and_o paradise_n 248._o bonaventure_n deify_v and_o make_v god._n 283._o boniface_n the_o eight_o 280._o book_n canonical_a 216._o book_n of_o thoby_n 262._o book_n second_o of_o the_o maccabee_n 217_o book_n canonical_a and_o apocrypha_n 214_o book_n of_o joseph_n 214_o to_o be_v bear_v again_o of_o water_n how_o it_o be_v be_v understand_v 234._o bosom_n of_o abraham_n 225_o bow_v the_o knee_n 291_o bull_n do_v all_o thing_n 284_o bull_n in_o purgatory_n 277._o bury_v of_o purgatory_n 299._o bury_v of_o the_o conscience_n 277._o c._n candle_n before_o 268_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n 215_o cathecismenes_n 237_o circumcision_n defer_v 229_o christ_n the_o restorer_n of_o all_o thing_n 247_o christ_n our_o pledge_n 215._o church_n of_o lausanne_n 256._o one_o only_a and_o eternal_a church_n 244._o character_n indebilis_fw-la 276._o charles_n 256._o clement_n the_o six_o 283._o clock_n of_o purgatory_n 286._o comparison_n of_o the_o divine_a and_o human_a doctrine_n 264._o comperison_n of_o the_o life_n present_a and_o that_o to_o come_v 246._o condition_n of_o the_o children_z of_o the_o christion_n 230._o conscience_n 247._o conscientia_fw-la mille_fw-la testes_fw-la 247._o consolation_n in_o abraham_n bosom_n 231._o contrariety_n of_o canon_n 285_o cornelius_n 298._o counsel_n of_o africa_n 242._o cream_n papistical_a 276._o creator_n of_o the_o creator_n 281._o custom_n of_o the_o true_a &_o false_a doctor_n 266._o d._n day_n of_o the_o lord_n 264._o dead_a do_v bite_v 274._o the_o dead_a how_o they_o be_v punish_v in_o their_o successor_n 253_o degree_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n 249_o descend_v of_o christ_n into_o hell_n 296._o difference_n between_o the_o limb_n purgatory_n and_o hell._n 22●_n difference_n between_o the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n and_o hell._n 221._o difference_n between_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n 244_o difference_n between_o the_o dead_a under_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n 244_o dispensation_n of_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n 284_o disposition_n of_o this_o dialogue_n 262_o diversity_n of_o pardon_n 271_o doctrine_n troublesome_a 259_o doctor_n scholastical_a doubt_v of_o the_o bull_n 284._o dream_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o of_o the_o rave_a theologaster_n 213_o dreamer_n or_o sleeper_n 249._o e._n eccius_n 262._o increase_v of_o glory_n in_o the_o other_o life_n 245._o en●ant_v how_o it_o shall_v bear_v the_o iniquity_n of_o his_o father_n 253._o error_n about_o the_o sacrament_n 238._o error_n touch_v the_o supper_n 234._o error_n of_o the_o bohemian_n &_o morion_n 234._o estate_n of_o the_o soul_n after_o the_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n 249_o eternity_n temporal_a 272._o evangelist_n of_o the_o pope_n 287._o example_n of_o the_o long_a day_n in_o purgatory_n 286._o example_n of_o judas_n machabeus_n 251._o example_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god._n 220._o example_n 212._o 286_o example_n of_o friar_n roger._n 277._o example_n that_o the_o saint_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v all_o draw_v into_o a_o general_a consequence_n 243._o example_n of_o ziphora_n 243._o exposition_n of_o the_o place_n of_o saint_n john_n ca._n 3._o 234._o exposition_n of_o the_o schoolman_n upon_o the_o pl●ce_n of_o saint_n john_n ca._n 3._o 236_o exposition_n of_o the_o place_n of_o thoby_n 262._o exposition_n of_o the_o place_n of_o the_o 1._o cor._n ca._n 3._o 263._o exposition_n allegorical_a 268_o excommunicate_v the_o dead_a 282._o excommunicate_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o dead_a 285_o exit_fw-la puris_fw-la negativis_fw-la nihill_fw-la sequitur_fw-la 271._o f._n fable_n of_o theseus_n and_o pyrothus_fw-la 221._o fable_n of_o the_o feign_a mourn_n of_o a_o labourer_n 300._o fable_n of_o gregory_n 221._o faith_n of_o simon_n 240._o fire_n 265._o foundation_n of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o mendicant_n 287._o friar_n christopher_n 255._o friend_n of_o the_o kitchen_n 223._o fury_v and_o she_o devil_n 248._o g._n gate_n of_o dream_n 212_o gate_n of_o y●ory_n and_o of_o horn_n 213._o gentile_n save_v without_o circumcision_n 229._o geryon_n 258._o gibellinus_n 280._o god_n of_o hypocrite_n 22●_n god_n compare_v to_o tyrant_n 252._o good_a work_n 223._o grace_n half_a 251._o great_a lockyer_n 276._o 2●5_n greatness_n of_o the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n 221._o gregory_n the_o first_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o bull_n for_o the_o dead_a 284._o h._n half_n a_o saviour_n 251_o hangman_n of_o infant_n 238._o harman_n condemn_v by_o the_o pope_n 282_o saint_n harman_n 282_o hell_n of_o the_o origenist_n and_o catabaptist_n 224._o helindius_n 270_o henticus_n 4._o 282_o hercules_n 258._o herostratus_n 256._o herostratus_n burn_v the_o temple_n of_o diana_n 256._o herald_n of_o righteousness_n 29●_n holy_a ghost_n a_o fire_n 235._o holy_a ghost_n water_n 235._o honour_n to_o the_o sacrament_n 2●9_n hostensis_fw-la contrary_a to_o the_o bull_n 284._o hypocrite_n envious_a of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 220_o hydra_n 258._o i_o ignorance_n excuse_v 〈◊〉_d 289._o image_n of_o death_n 250_o indian_n 235._o incredulity_n of_o thomas_n 212._o insufficiency_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n for_o to_o prove_v purgatory_n 2●1_n 〈◊〉_d of_o saint_n for_o the_o dead_a 277._o joseph_n author_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n 214._o isaac_n and_o ishmael_n jubilee_n of_o the_o pope_n 283._o jubilee_n of_o god._n 283._o judgement_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o who_o it_o appertain_v 216._o judgement_n by_o the_o word_n 211._o judgement_n of_o the_o sodomite_n and_o gomorrians_n 288._o judgement_n of_o saint_n hierome_n touch_v the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n 214_o justice_n and_o mercy_n of_o god._n 222_o k._n key_n of_o saint_n peter_n &_o of_o the_o pope_n 276._o key_n of_o hell_n 279_o key_n change_v 276._o kindred_n of_o loth._n 288_o l._n language_n of_o the_o prophet_n 217_o our_o lady_n of_o butter_n 241._o legend_n of_o saint_n 215._o legittimation_n 216._o lembe_fw-mi 226._o lembus_fw-la 226._o limbus_n 225._o saint_n lewes_n canonize_v 282_o licence_n theological_a 225_o limb_n of_o the_o infant_n destroy_v 238._o limb_n of_o the_o infant_n 226._o limb_n of_o the_o father_n 244._o limb_n 219._o 297_o limb_n what_o it_o signify_v 225._o live_v call_v dead_a 294_o lud●_n seculares_fw-la 283._o m._n madiani●s_n papistical_a 287._o maccabee_n 215._o man_n make_v gods._n 280._o manner_n to_o know_v god._n 279._o mark_v of_o conscience_n 277_o mark_n of_o the_o great_a whore_n 277._o mar●●●nists_n 242._o martyr_n before_o the_o come_n of_o jesus_n
it_o in_o the_o month_n of_o february_n by_o y_fw-es 1._o institution_n &_o appointment_n of_o numa_n pompilius_n y_fw-fr second_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n all_o the_o reason_n that_o move_v odilo_n proceed_v but_o of_o ignorance_n for_o y_fw-es he_o understand_v not_o the_o cause_n whereof_o those_o groan_n noise_n and_o fearful_a cry_n which_o he_o hear_v in_o sicily_n about_o that_o mountain_n do_v arise_v but_o imagine_v that_o it_o be_v the_o devil_n which_o hale_v and_o before_o themselves_o by_o the_o hair_n sorrow_v with_o great_a despite_n that_o they_o see_v thesoule_n go_v out_o of_o pain_n and_o torment_n but_o his_o imagination_n have_v bring_v no_o hurt_n to_o his_o covent_n nor_o to_o all_o the_o other_o monk_n and_o priest_n for_o that_o sanie_fw-la day_n be_v the_o best_a fair_a that_o they_o have_v all_o the_o year_n and_o a_o time_n in_o which_o they_o make_v harvest_n and_o vintage_n altogether_o with_o not_o take_v overmuch_o pain_n if_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o decease_a have_v as_o much_o gain_n as_o they_o they_o may_v be_v very_o joyful_a of_o the_o feast_n thomas_n but_o i_o will_v glad_o know_v from_o whence_o those_o cry_n and_o mourn_n do_v proceed_v whether_o they_o come_v iras_fw-la from_o the_o devil_n or_o from_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o damn_a or_o from_o those_o which_o be_v keep_v in_o purgatory_n or_o of_o some_o other_o natural_a cause_n hillarius_n the_o cause_n be_v easy_a to_o be_v know_v of_o he_o who_o will_v understand_v what_o be_v the_o situation_n and_o nature_n of_o the_o place_n for_o of_o the_o one_o side_n be_v the_o 6_o roar_n of_o the_o sea_n which_o make_v a_o horrible_a noise_n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o great_a gulf_n of_o fire_n that_o arise_v and_o come_v out_o of_o the_o mountain_n wherefore_o when_o the_o vehement_a ▪_o wind_n do_v blow_n and_o enter_v violent_o into_o the_o hole_n and_o cave_n that_o be_v ▪_o there_o and_o mingle_v themselves_o with_o those_o vein_n of_o brimstone_n kindle_v with_o that_o impetous_a fire_n we_o must_v not_o marvel_v when_o all_o those_o thing_n mix_v and_o confuse_a together_o do_v meet_a if_o there_o be_v fearful_a cry_n and_o such_o which_o the_o poet_n have_v describe_v say_v lo●_n here_o the_o hill_n that_o aetna_n hight_v most_o horrible_a to_o behold_v aetna_n thunder_a out_o and_o make_v cry_n most_o terrible_a to_o be_v tell_v which_o many_o time_n do_v cast_v from_o it_o of_o cloud_n that_o be_v full_a dark_a and_o also_o whirl_v wind_n that_o be_v great_a with_o smoke_n that_o be_v full_a black_a and_o burn_a spark_n of_o fire_n do_v fly_v and_o flame_n that_o be_v most_o great_a which_o from_o the_o fire_n rise_v sudden_o and_o touch_v the_o heavenly_a seat_n which_o oftentimes_o do_v vomit_n out_o the_o howel_n and_o the_o gut_n of_o rock_n and_o stone_n that_o be_v full_a hard_a which_o in_o that_o hill_n there_o lupke_v thomas_n i_o do_v then_o much_o doubt_n if_o it_o be_v even_o so_o as_o you_o say_v but_o that_o the_o good_a odilo_n be_v deceive_v and_o that_o he_o and_o all_o his_o monk_n have_v great_o dream_v 〈…〉_o hillarius_n they_o have_v at_o the_o least_o so_o much_o dream_v and_o those_o which_o have_v believe_v their_o dream_n as_o they_o who_o stay_v themselves_o upon_o the_o fable_n of_o poet_n have_v think_v that_o enseladus_fw-la briarnis_fw-la and_o the_o other_o giant_n be_v bury_v under_o that_o great_a and_o burn_a hill_n of_o aetna_n after_o that_o jupiter_n destroy_v they_o with_o lightning_n and_o overthrow_v they_o upon_o the_o mountain_n that_o they_o have_v make_v for_o to_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n when_o they_o war_v against_o he_o for_o even_o as_o they_o imagine_v that_o those_o fearful_a and_o terrible_a giant_n be_v enclose_v under_o that_o mountain_n who_o remove_v themselves_o from_o the_o one_o side_n to_o the_o other_o do_v cast_v and_o throw_v forth_o those_o great_a and_o dangerous_a ●●●tes_n flame_v fire_n whoorlewinde_n and_o smoke_z those_o here_o do_v put_v the_o devil_n in_o slée●e_n of_o the_o giant_n and_o do_v attribute_n unto_o they_o that_o which_o the_o mountain_n do_v natural_o so_o as_o other_o dreamer_n and_o fo●●es_n have_v do_v of_o the_o mountain_n of_o island_n and_o norway_n of_o norway_n which_o they_o that_o have_v write_v of_o those_o regyon_n &_o country_n do_v witness_n that_o they_o be_v almost_o like_a unto_o that_o hill_n aetna_n and_o special_o about_o the_o border_n of_o norway_n for_o they_o say_v that_o there_o be_v there_o a_o mountain_n common_o call_v hechelbergo_n environ_v with_o the_o sea_n the_o most_o horrible_a hechelbergo_n and_o fearful_a that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o for_o to_o make_v the_o tale_n better_o and_o the_o thing_n more_o marvellous_a they_o say_v also_o that_o there_o be_v hear_v the_o cry_n wéepinge_n and_o lamentation_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o go_v into_o hell_n insomuch_o as_o those_o horrible_a cry_n and_o noise_n be_v spread_v and_o hear_v damn_a a_o mile_n round_o about_o they_o add_v moreover_o that_o there_o be_v very_o great_a and_o marvellous_a black_a raven_n &_o crow_n crow_n which_o fly_v round_o about_o it_o make_v also_o horrible_a cry_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o they_o terrify_v every_o man_n that_o none_o bare_v to_o approach_v nigh_o unto_o that_o mountain_z afterward_o heat_n there_o arise_v out_o of_o the_o same_o two_o fountain_n whereof_o the_o one_o be_v of_o such_o vehement_a and_o excessive_a coldness_n and_o the_o other_o of_o such_o heat_n that_o both_o of_o they_o be_v intolerable_a and_o there_o be_v no_o element_n how_o cold_a or_o hot_a soever_o it_o be_v but_o that_o they_o surmount_v it_o both_o in_o heat_n and_o coldness_n and_o which_o be_v more_o in_o that_o same_o country_n towards_o the_o south_n part_n as_o man_n say_v there_o be_v a_o place_n call_v nadhegrin_n in_o which_o the_o devil_n of_o that_o devil_n place_n do_v appear_v unto_o man_n who_o they_o see_v before_o their_o eye_n have_v body_n of_o the_o air_n thomas_n odilo_n may_v have_v have_v better_a occasion_n to_o have_v situate_v hell_n and_o purgatory_n there_o then_o in_o the_o hill_n aetna_n hillarius_n it_o will_v have_v have_v better_o appearance_n if_o those_o thing_n be_v true_a but_o if_o we_o shall_v stay_v ourselves_o upon_o such_o dream_n and_o lie_v we_o may_v also_o forge_v a_o other_o hell_n and_o purgatory_n in_o scotland_n in_o which_o scotland_n man_n say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o hill_n full_a of_o sorrow_n &_o very_o fearful_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o cry_n of_o those_o that_o do_v weep_v and_o lament_v there_o and_o in_o thuringia_n there_o be_v a_o hill_n in_o which_o there_o be_v hear_v thuringia_n most_o horrible_a noise_n &_o cry_n and_o in_o have_v not_o only_o the_o name_n to_o be_v frequent_v with_o faun_n &_o satyr_n which_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o devil_n which_o many_o way_n have_v seduce_v in_o paynim_n but_o also_o some_o do_v affirm_v y_fw-mi they_o have_v see_v the_o same_o by_o experience_n and_o some_o writer_n &_o author_n account_v for_o man_n worthy_a of_o credit_n have_v write_v it_o thomas_n there_o shall_v be_v then_o many_o helles_n and_o purgatory_n by_o that_o account_n but_o because_o i_o fear_v very_o much_o that_o there_o be_v great_a folly_n and_o lie_n in_o those_o history_n i_o think_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v most_o sure_a and_o expedient_a for_o i_o to_o take_v that_o way_n which_o i_o first_o purpose_v then_o to_o take_v the_o way_n either_o in_o sicily_n or_o in_o any_o of_o those_o place_n that_o you_o have_v name_v unto_o i_o for_o the_o way_n be_v not_o much_o frequent_v nor_o know_v as_o that_o be_v which_o i_o have_v take_v upon_o i_o except_o you_o have_v touch_v the_o one_o of_o the_o country_n whether_o i_o will_v go_v hillarius_n whether_o have_v you_o then_o enterprise_v to_o go_v thomas_n i_o do_v make_v my_o account_n to_o go_v straight_o into_o scotland_n or_o into_o ireland_n hillarius_n be_v there_o any_o way_n to_o descend_v into_o these_o infernal_a region_n and_o country_n thomas_n have_v you_o ever_o hear_v speak_v of_o the_o voyage_n and_o cave_n of_o saint_n patrick_n do_v you_o not_o remember_v the_o book_n that_o we_o have_v at_o purgatory_n school_n when_o we_o be_v little_a child_n hillarius_n you_o make_v i_o now_o remember_v the_o say_n of_o my_o grandfather_n be_v we_o not_o happy_a in_o those_o day_n that_o we_o have_v such_o book_n in_o our_o hand_n in_o steed_n of_o some_o good_a author_n and_o of_o the_o bible_n and_o holy_a scripture_n if_o we_o consider_v well_o the_o unhappiness_n and_o misery_n of_o that_o time_n and_o barberousnesse_n and_o ignorance_n both_o of_o god_n and_o all_o good_a discipline_n which_o then_o possess_v all_o the_o world_n and_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o mercy_n which_o god_o at_o